#hey you with the face is the best greeting
Explore tagged Tumblr posts
Text
live on tour (interlinked) | h.s | 1
pt 1, pt 2 (complete)
summary: we donât talk about it, itâs something we donât doâcause once you go without it, nothing else will do.
cw: smut18+ in pt 2, weed, alcohol, angst, sort of a slowburn idk, fem!reader, hs1rry
word count: approx 21.5k gulp
| idk how to feel ab this!!! stay with me now. + tumblr forced me to put this into two parts. i'm posting pt 2 right after this. smut is in 2nd part if that's only ur cup of tea
masterlist
June, 2017
It was Mitch who vouched for her.
Harry had trusted him implicitly since the first meeting. His effortless cool, his way of speaking only when necessary, and the way his guitar sounded like it could split the skyâall of it made him essential to Harryâs debut. If Mitch said someone was good, Harry would believe it.
But good wasnât the issue.
âSânot about talent,â Harry had said one night in rehearsals, after the original second guitarist dropped out. âI just need tâfeel like we fit, you know?â
Mitch had nodded, taking that as permission to make the call.
Her name was YN.
Heâd heard the name before. Her reputation in the industry wasnât loud but sharpâa razorâs edge that hinted at precision and professionalism. A prodigy of sorts, sheâd landed her big break with Pink Floydâs operatic revival of The Wall, the youngest lead guitarist in the showâs history. Since then, sheâd moved from project to project, touring, sitting in on sessions, lending her guitar to artists who wanted her distinct, cutting sound.
Harry had always assumed she was someone you called when you needed the best, but not someone you kept around.
He wasnât sure why that thought stuck in his head when Mitch mentioned her name.
He fumbled with the hem of his white t-shirt and stood at the back of the dim rehearsal space, watching Mitch set up. The low hum of amps warming up filled the room. Mitchâs quiet focus steadied Harryâs nervesâuntil the door opened.
She walked in with her guitar strapped across her back. She wasnât early, but she wasnât late either. The kind of timing that said she knew she was good but wasnât going to make a show of it.
âHey.â Mitch greeted her with a slight nod. Heâd already taken his place behind the mixing board, leaving Harry to do the introductions.
YN turned her head toward Harry. Her eyes flickered over him briefly, as if appraising him, and then landed back on Mitch. âThis the audition?â
Harry frowned. âNot an audition. A rehearsal.â
She raised an eyebrow, but her expression didnât waver. âRight. Rehearsal.â
There was no handshake, no nervousness, no wide-eyed awe that he was used to when people first met him. She treated him like someone she was there to work with, not someone she wanted to impress.
Mitch gestured to a stand near the tall brunette. âYou can set up there.â
She walked past them both without another word, unzipping her guitar case and pulling out a battered Stratocaster, crème and pine green. Harry noticed her hands immediatelyânimble fingers with calluses thick enough to catch the light.
âLetâs get on with it then,â she grinned, plugging in.
He leaned toward Mitch, speaking low enough that she couldnât hear. âBit cocky, isnât she?â
Mitch smirked but didnât reply.
The first run-through was solid. She played with precision, hitting every note cleanly, and her technical skills were undeniable. But something about it felt cold, distant. Harry tried to catch her eye while they were playing, but she was hyper-focused on her guitar, her face blank.
When they finished the first song, he put his hands on his hips. âAlright,â he paused, louder than necessary. âThatâsâŚfine. Letâs take it from the top.â
YN looked at Mitch. âFine?â
Harry cut in before he could respond. âYeah, fine. Itâs technically good, but thereâs no feeling in it. This isnât session work. Weâre putting on a live show. People need tâfeel something when you play.â
She stared at him for a moment, then set her guitar down on its stand. âAnd what exactly do you want me to feel? Weâre playing your songs.â
The tension in the room spiked. Mitch glanced between the two of them, looking ready to intervene.
He crossed his arms. âWhatâs that supposed to mean?â
âIt means,â she started, brushing her hair back from her face, âthat if you want something specific, maybe tell me what youâre looking for instead of just saying itâs not good enough.â
Her words hung in the air.
Mitch cleared his throat. âWhy donât we try the next track?â
She picked up her guitar without waiting for Harryâs input. Her fingers brushed the strings in a quick, angry strum as she tested the tuning. Harry stared at her, his jaw tight.
She didnât flinch under his gaze.
It went on like that for the next hour.
Every time YN played, he found something to critique. Her tone, her phrasing, her timingâit didnât matter that Mitch disagreed and kept insisting she was perfect for the role. Harry refused to back down, nitpicking every detail.
By the time they reached the final song, the air in the room was thick with unspoken animosity. YN played the opening riff of kiwi with more aggression than necessary, her fingers sliding over the frets like she wanted to punish the guitar.
When they finished, she shifted her weight and unplugged her amp. âAre we done?â she asked, slinging her guitar back over her shoulder.
Harry opened his mouth, ready with another critique, but Mitch cut him off. âYeah. Weâre done f'today.â
She nodded, her expression unreadable. She didnât look at Harry again as she walked toward the door.
When it closed behind her, Harry let out a frustrated sigh. âSheâs not right for this.â
He raised an eyebrow. âYou sure about that?â
âIâm positive,â He snapped. âSheâs not a team player. She doesnât fit.â
He leaned back against the mixing board, crossing his arms, hair falling behind his shoulders. âYou ever think that maybe youâre the one who doesnât fit?â
Harry glared at him. âWhatâs that supposed tâmean?â
âIt means,â he said slowly, âthat sheâs a better guitarist than youâre giving her credit for. And maybe you donât like her because sheâs not trying to kiss your ass.â
He scoffed. âThatâs ridiculous.â
Mitch shrugged. âIf you want to replace her, go ahead. But good luck finding someone else who can keep up with meâŚor you.â
Outside the rehearsal space, YN stood by her car, lighting a cigarette. She didnât smoke often, only with a drink or if she was tense.Â
She exhaled a plume of smoke into the warm evening air, her jaw clenched. She wasnât angry exactly, but there was something about Harry Styles that got under her skin.
It wasnât his fame or his musicâthat was fine. Sheâd worked with big names before. It was the way he carried himself, like he expected the world to bend around him.
He wasnât used to people pushing back, and YN had no intention of making it easy for him.
If he wanted her to feel something when she played, sheâd give him exactly that.
Even if it meant setting the whole stage on fire.
The rehearsal space smelled faintly of stale coffee and amps that had been running too long. The walls were lined with soundproofing panels, their faded gray color doing little to brighten the room. YN arrived early this timeânot out of eagerness, but because she didnât want to give Harry anything else to criticize.
Her guitar case thumped onto the ground before she adjusted the ring on her pinkyânot dainty, but not loud. Her motherâs birth flower ingrained along the gold surface, a piece of her she could carry since her death in 2014. She could hear Mitch in the back, tuning his Gibson, and the faint shuffle of Harryâs sneakers as he moved across the space, adjusting mic stands and scribbling notes.
She was effortlessly pretty, the kind of beauty that crept up on you when you werenât paying attention. Her lips held a natural pout, and her hair framed her face in a way that looked casual but impossibly deliberate, like it had conspired with the universe to fall just right. Her outfit was understated, perfect for rehearsalâstraight-leg blue denim that sat just right on her hips, an off-white baby tee with cherry bomb splashed in bold red across the center, and a pair of scuffed white club c reeboks that had seen more than their fair share of years since 2015.
Around her wrist was a faded friendship bracelet, its once-bright threads dulled by time but no less significant. Jude, her best friend since high school, had tied it there the night they graduated, their laughter mingling with the hum of summer cicadas. Sheâd never taken it off, not once, even as life swept them into different journeys.
When YN told Jude over vodka cranberries that sheâd landed a gig playing guitar for Harry Stylesâyes, that Harry StylesâJude nearly fell off her barstool. Sheâd been the kind of One Direction fan who made custom shirts for concerts and cried during little things. YN still remembered the way her voice shook with disbelief as she grabbed her by the shoulders and said, âYouâre telling me youâre gonna play for Harry fucking Styles?â It had taken two rounds of shots to calm her down, though her enthusiasm had lingered for weeks. It was the kind of reaction that reminded YN how surreal this opportunity really was.
She promised sheâd get her a front row ticket the first night in New York.Â
She took her time setting up, deliberately slow. If Harry wanted to play mind games, she could too.
âMorning,â Mitch greeted, glancing up from his guitar.
âHey,â she replied, flashing a quick smile. Mitch was the only person in the room she felt remotely comfortable around.
Harryâs voice cut through the room, sharper than it needed to be. âYouâre early today.â
YN didnât bother looking at him. âThought Iâd save you the trouble of complaining.â
The sound of Mitchâs guitar string snapping filled the silence that followed. He muttered something under his breath and bent to grab a spare string from his bag.
He walked over, his footsteps deliberate. âItâs not complaining. Itâs feedback.â
âUh-huh,â YNâs lips twitched, focusing on adjusting her amp. She crouched to test the levels, purposely ignoring him.
Harry crouched too, just enough to catch her eye. He smelt like cedar and pine. âYou have something tâsay?â
Her hands paused on the dials. âNope.â
âGood.â
She stood abruptly, the motion forcing Harry to lean back. Her expression didnât change, but her grip on her guitar tightened.
The rehearsal started the same way the last one ended: tense.
YN matched Harryâs intensity with her playing, her fingers precise but hard, striking each note with the kind of force that could shatter glass. She didnât look at him once, even when he stopped the song halfway through to give her another round of vague critiques.
âCan you make it lessâŚclinical?â he asked, his hands gesturing vaguely in the air.
âClinical?â she repeated, her voice flat.
âYeah, likeâŚput some soul into it. Like it means something to you.â
Her lips twitched into the faintest smile, one that didnât reach her eyes. âI wasnât aware Sign of the Times was a soul song.â
She didnât mean that, not really. It was a song of his that she enjoyed, she liked the 70âs elements he took, the way his voice sounded with the instruments in the backâbut he was getting under her skin, he deserved the same.
Mitch coughed to hide his laugh.
Harryâs jaw clenched. âYou know what I mean.â
âDo I?â
The tension in the room was palpable now, a live wire crackling between them. Mitch stood off to the side, quietly restringing his guitar, pretending not to notice.
Harry took a deep breath, his tone softening. âLook, I just need it tâfeel real. Like youâre part of it, not just playing over it.â
She stared at him for a moment, her eyes narrowing slightly. âAlright.â
She picked up her guitar again and launched into the song before anyone could say another word. This time, her playing wasnât just technically perfectâit was angry. The notes tore through the air, raw and sharp, as if she were trying to prove a point with every riff.
He watched her, his arms crossed tightly over his chest. He couldnât deny it sounded goodâbetter than goodâbut there was something about her attitude that made him want to push back harder.
By the time they reached the last song of the set, the air in the room was thick with frustration.
Mitch played the opening riff, his fingers gliding effortlessly over the strings, and YN followed with her part. Her playing was looser now, more natural, but the tension in her shoulders hadnât eased.
When they finished, Harry didnât say anything right away. He stood there, staring at her, his lips pressed into a thin line.
âWell?â she asked, her voice clipped.
âSâfine,â he said, his tone careful.
âFine?â
âYouâre improving,â he clarified, though the words felt begrudging.
She laughed under her breath, shaking her head. âGood to know Iâm living up to your impossible standards.â
Harry bristled. âItâs not impossible to ask for some effort.â
âEffort?â Her voice rose slightly. âIâve been putting in effort since I walked through that door, but all youâve done is nitpick every single thing I do.â
âBecause I know what this show needs!â
âNo, you know what you need,â she shot back. âThis isnât about the musicâitâs about your ego.â
The words hit like a slap. Mitchâs guitar strap slipped from his shoulder as he froze, watching the scene unfold.
Harryâs expression darkened. âIf my ego were the problem, you wouldnât be here.â
The room went silent.
YNâs gaze didnât waver. âRight. Well, maybe you shouldâve thought about that before you dragged me into this.â
She slung her guitar over her shoulder and walked toward the door, her sneakers squeaking against the floor.
âWhere are you going?â Harry called after her.
She paused, her hand on the doorknob. âTaking a break. Unless you have a problem with that too.â
Before he could respond, the door swung shut behind her.
Mitch set his guitar down and looked at Harry, his expression unreadable. âYouâre really bad at this, you know that?â he said finally.
Harry glared at him. âAt what?â
âNot making her hate you.â
Harry sighed, running a hand through his hair. âShe doesnât hate me.â
Mitch raised an eyebrow. âAnd the sky isnât blue.â
He didnât reply. He sat down on the edge of the stage, his shoulders slumping slightly. He wasnât used to being challenged like this, and it was throwing him off balance.
Mitch leaned against the amp, watching him. âYou know, you donât have to like her. You just have to work with her.â
âI know.âÂ
âThen stop pushing her so hard. Sheâs already good enough for this tourâyouâre the one who needs to let go a bit.â
He didnât say anything, but the knot in his chest tightened. He wasnât sure if it was frustration or something else entirely.
Outside, YN leaned against the wall, her cigarette glowing faintly in the dim light. She exhaled slowly, her breath visible in the cool evening air.
She wasnât sure what was worseâworking with Harry or wanting to prove him wrong so badly it made her chest ache.
She took another drag and let the thought dissolve in the smoke.
September third
The studio was quiet now, the hum of amps and chatter of the band long gone. The others had left half an hour ago, leaving YN to pack up her gear in peace. She moved deliberately, her hands steady despite the exhaustion settling deep in her bones.
The rehearsal had been grueling. Harry had pushed harder than ever, his sharp critiques grating on her nerves until every strum of her guitar felt like a defiance. She wasnât sure if he noticedâor caredâbut by the end of the session, sheâd felt like she was one wrong note away from throwing her guitar through a wall.
Now, alone with the quiet, she could finally breathe.
Until she wasnât alone.
The sound of footsteps echoed behind her, and YN stiffened, glancing over her shoulder to see Harry stepping back into the room. He had swapped his stage shoes for sneakers, the cuffs of his trousers rolled slightly at the ankles. His sweater was slung over one shoulder, and the faint sheen of sweat on his neck suggested he hadnât been gone long.
âForgot mânotebook,â he said, his voice casual as his eyes scanned the room.
âLucky me,â she muttered, turning back to her guitar.
He didnât reply, but she could feel his presence as he crossed the space, moving toward the table where his things were scattered.
YN focused on wrapping her cable, each loop tight and precise. She wasnât in the mood for small talk, not after the day theyâd had.
But Harry didnât leave.
The silence stretched, heavy and charged, as he lingered near the table. YNâs movements slowed, her frustration bubbling to the surface.
âSomething you need?â she asked, not bothering to mask the edge in her voice.
When he didnât answer right away, she turned to face him, her hands still clutching the coiled cable.
Harry was watching her, his notebook forgotten on the table. His eyes were sharp, unreadable, and the weight of his gaze made her stomach twist uncomfortably.
âYou were pushing today,â he said finally, his tone measured.
She blinked, caught off guard. âExcuse me?â
âDuring rehearsal,â he clarified, crossing his arms. âYou werenât playing like yânormally do.â
âMaybe I was just tired.â She countered, though the words felt like a lie even as she said them.
âYou werenât tired,â he said softly.
Her jaw tightened. âWhat do you want, Harry? If youâre here to critique me again, save it. Iâve heard enough for one day.â
His brow furrowed, but he didnât rise to the bait. Instead, he stepped closer, his movements deliberate but unthreatening. âI wasnât trying tâpick on you,â he breathed, his voice quieter now. âIf thatâs how it felt, Iâm sorry.â
YN stared at him, her mind struggling to reconcile the words with the man whoâd spent weeks nitpicking every note she played.
âWhy do you care?â she asked, the question slipping out before she could stop it.
He hesitated, his lips pressing into a thin line as he looked at her. âBecause I need this to work.â
His words landed heavily between them, and for a moment, the room felt too small.
âYou act like itâs just me,â she said finally, her voice quieter but still tinged with frustration. âLike Iâm the only thing keeping it from working.â
âI donât think that,â he said quickly, his eyes locking onto hers. âYouâre goodâbetter than good. Thatâs not the problem.â
âThen what is?â
He exhaled slowly, dragging a hand through his hair. âI donât know. Maybe itâs me.â
YN froze, her breath catching at the raw honesty in his voice. She hadnât expected thatânot from him.
The silence between them grew heavier, the tension coiling tighter with every passing second.
Harryâs gaze dropped briefly, like he was searching for the right words. When he looked back up, there was something different in his expression, something softer but no less intense.
âYou frustrate me,â he said finally, the words low but certain.
YNâs throat went dry. âRight back at you.â
He took another step closer, and this time, she didnât move away. Her heart pounded as she looked up at him, her chest tightening under the weight of his stare.
Neither of them spoke, the silence crackling with unspoken words.
She didnât know who leaned in firstâmaybe it was him, or maybe it was herâbut suddenly the space between them was almost nonexistent. She could feel the warmth of his breath, see the faint flicker of hesitation in his eyes as he lingered just close enough to touch.
Her pulse thundered in her ears, and her fingers curled into the coiled cable in her hand, desperate for something to hold onto.
âHarry,â she whispered, though she wasnât sure if it was a warning or an invitation.
The sound of his name seemed to pull him back, his eyes searching hers for a fleeting moment before he stepped away.
âI should go.âÂ
He grabbed his notebook and left without another word, the door clicking shut behind him.
YN stood there, her heart still racing, the ghost of his presence lingering in the air.
Whatever had just happenedâwhatever had almost happenedâshe wasnât sure what to do with it.
September nineteenth
San Francisco was humming.
The Masonic sat perched atop Nob Hill like a jewel overlooking the city, its art deco façade catching the early morning light. By dawn, the line of fans already snaked around the block, blankets and camp chairs scattered across the sidewalk. A faint fog clung to the streets, giving the historic building an ethereal quality as the first rays of sunlight broke through.
It was opening night of Harryâs solo tour, and the air outside the venue was electric.
Groups of fans huddled close, wrapped in scarves and oversized sweatshirts, their conversations a steady hum of anticipation. Some clutched homemade signs or albums, while others leaned against the building, scrolling through their phones to pass the hours.
Inside the venue, it was chaos.
The crew had been there since 6 am, unloading crates of equipment, running cables like veins along the stage. Monitors were stacked, adjusted, then adjusted again. Lights were tested until they bathed the empty floor in saturated pinks and golds. A countdown clock blinked red backstage, a digital reminder that time was slipping through the cracks, too fast and too slow all at once.
By 10 am, the band was in full rehearsal mode, locked in a cycle of repetition and frustration. YN perched on a stool near the edge of the stage, her guitar resting against her thighs, the strap digging into her shoulder. Mitch was on her left, his head bent over his guitar, fingers moving like smoke over the frets. The two of them had been working together for months now, tight and efficient, a partnership forged in long hours and shared cigarettes.
Harry stood center stage, mic in hand, dressed like he hadnât quite decided if he wanted to be a rock star or a poet today. He wore a loose black blouse unbuttoned to his sternum, tucked into tailored trousers that hung just right. His boots clacked against the floor as he paced, his movements restless, his voice sharp as glass when he spoke.
âStop, stop,â he sighed, waving his free hand. âItâs off. That transitionâs not right.â
She bit down on her tongue. It wasnât off. She knew it wasnât off. But Harry had a way of finding faults where there werenât any, like he needed to pick at something just to prove he could.
Mitch glanced at her, a subtle flick of his eyes that said, Donât.
She ignored him.
âItâs not the transition,â she jutted her chin, her voice cutting through the murmur of techs and assistants scurrying around the stage. âThe timingâs fine. Itâs your entrance thatâs late.â
He turned to her slowly, the mic dangling from his fingers like a threat. âOh, is it?â he asked, his tone light, almost amused, but his jaw was tight. âYou sure about that?â
YN met his gaze, unflinching. âPositive.â
For a moment, the only sound was the faint hum of an amp in the background. Harry didnât say anything, just tipped his head slightly, his lips curving into something that wasnât quite a smile. Then he turned back to the band. âAlright,â he paused, his voice smooth again, commanding. âRun it from the top.â
Mitch exhaled, a quiet sound that YN barely caught. She didnât look at him. Instead, she adjusted the strap on her guitar and settled her fingers on the fretboard, ready for another round of the same song theyâd played fifteen times already.
By noon, the tension was palpable.
Lunch was a quick affair, eaten standing in the dim backstage area while techs rushed past with tangled cords and boxes of equipment. She leaned against a speaker case, picking at a dry sandwich, her guitar propped up against her leg. Across the room, Harry was surrounded by his usual orbit of stylists and assistants, his laugh ringing out every now and then, low and easy. He looked completely unbothered, like he wasnât the reason half the band was on edge.
Mitch sat down next to her, his plate balanced precariously on his knee.
âYouâve got to let it go,â he said quietly, not looking up from his food.
âLet what go?â She asked, feigning innocence.
He gave her a flat look. âYou and Harry. The little pissing contest youâve got going on.â
âThereâs no contest,â she shrugged, taking a bite of her sandwich. âI already won.â
Mitch snorted, but he didnât argue.
By 5 pm, the soundcheck was over, and the venue was nearly ready. The stage lights cast long, dramatic shadows across the room, making everything feel larger than life. Outside, the crowd had grown to hundreds, their voices rising in bursts of cheers every time someone peeked out from behind the curtains.
Backstage, the dressing rooms were a flurry of last-minute preparations. Harry was in his dressing room, a blur of motion as his stylist fussed over his outfit. A floral suit hung on a rack nearby, catching the light like a disco ball.
In her own space, YN was tightening a loose screw on her guitar, her fingers moving with practiced ease. Her nerves were starting to hum, a low undercurrent she couldnât quite shake. This was her first tourâher first real tour in a set band, a member, belongingâand it felt like walking a tightrope with no safety net.
A knock on the door pulled her out of her thoughts.
âCome in,â she called, not looking up.
The door creaked open, and Harry stepped inside, his presence filling the small room like a gust of wind.
YN froze for half a second before returning to her task.âWhat do you want?â she asked, not bothering to hide the edge in her voice.
Harry leaned against the doorframe, crossing his arms. âJust checking in,â he said, his tone deceptively casual. âYou ready for tonight?â
She glanced at him, her expression unreadable. âAre you?â
His lips twitched, like he was fighting a smile. âAlways.â
For a moment, they just stared at each other, the air between them crackling with unspoken tension. Then Harry pushed off the doorframe and straightened, his eyes lingering on her for a beat longer than necessary.
âSee you out there,â he mumbled, and then he was gone, leaving the room feeling smaller and heavier than before.
By eight, the doors had opened, and the crowd was pouring in, filling the venue with a rush of energy that seemed to seep into the walls. Backstage, the band was gathered in a tight circle, their instruments tuned, their game faces on.
Harry stood at the center, his suit catching the light, his presence commanding as he gave a short pep talk. YN stood slightly to the side, her fingers tapping an uneven rhythm against her thigh. She barely listened to his words, too focused on the sound of the crowd beyond the curtains, their cheers swelling like a tidal wave.
When the house lights dimmed, the noise was deafening.
As the band took their places on stage, the roar of the audience hit her like a physical force. The spotlight burned bright, blinding her for a moment as she adjusted to the sheer magnitude of it all.
Harry stepped forward, his silhouette outlined in pinks and gold as he grabbed the mic stand. The crowd went feral, their screams rising to a fever pitch as he flashed that grin, the one that could disarm even the sharpest tongue.
He didnât speak, he didnât need toâthe crowd did that for him.Â
YNâs fingers hovered over the strings of her guitar, her pulse thrumming in time with the cheers.
And then the music began.
It was loud and raw and electric, the kind of sound that sank its teeth into you and didnât let go. The stage pulsed with life, the crowd moving like a single, writhing entity, their hands reaching for something intangible.
Harry owned the stage, his presence magnetic, his voice weaving through the room like a spell. YN played like she had something to prove, her fingers dancing over the strings with precision and fire. For all their clashes, for all the sharp words and narrowed eyes, when they played together, it was seamless.
Perfect, even.
And maybe that was the problem.
The stage felt alive. No, not alive. Hungry. Like it had been waiting for this moment, this crowd, and it wouldnât be satisfied until every single body in the Masonic was consumed by the music.
YNâs sneakers scuffed against the stage floor as she adjusted her stance, fingers flying over the strings of her guitar. The heat of the lights was a constant pressure on her skin, beads of sweat forming at her temples and sliding down the back of her neck. But she didnât care. Not about the lights, or the heat, or the way her thighs ached from standing so long.
She was falling in loveâwith the music, with the electricity in the air, with the way the crowd moved like a living organism, surging and crashing like waves in sync with every beat of the drums.
The screams had been deafening from the start, a tsunami of sound that swelled every time Harry leaned into the mic, his voice wrapping around the room and pulling it taut. He worked the crowd like a master, every glance, every laugh, every sway of his hips sending the audience into hysterics.
She wasnât immune.
She hated to admit it, but she felt it tooâthat gravitational pull, that magnetic charisma that seemed to pour out of him effortlessly. She caught herself watching him when she shouldnât, her eyes flicking to the way his shoulders moved under the sharp lines of his sequined suit, the easy way he gripped the mic stand like it was an extension of his body.
And every so often, heâd glance at her.
Not a passing look. A moment.
It would last half a beat longer than it should, his eyes catching hers under the wash of the stage lights. She couldnât tell if he was teasing her, challenging her, or something else entirely. But it was enough to make her fingers stumble once, the wrong note ringing out for a split second before she recovered.
If Harry noticed, he didnât show it.
The setlist was relentless. The kind of music that made you feel like your heart was going to explode, like you couldnât keep up and didnât want to. The kind of music that made YN forget she was supposed to hate the guy running the show.
âAlright,â Harry said into the mic, his voice lower now, intimate, like he was sharing a secret with each and every person in the crowd. âI want to slow it down for a bit. Letâs make this next one special, yeah?â
The audience erupted, their cheers shaking the walls.
She let herself glance up, just once, and there he was.
Harry stood center stage, his eyes sweeping over the crowd like he could memorize every face. And then his gaze found hers. It pinned her, held her still even as her hands moved over the strings with practiced ease. He didnât smile this time, didnât smirk or tease. His expression was soft, unreadable, like he was trying to figure her out and didnât quite know how.
YN looked away first, focusing on her guitar, on the warmth of the strings under her fingers. But she felt his eyes linger, even as he turned back to the crowd, his voice slipping into the melody.
The audience swayed, their voices blending with his, turning the room into one collective heartbeat. She could feel it under her skin, in her chest, this pulsing connection between the stage and the people who filled the seats. She couldnât explain it, but it made her chest ache, a hollow kind of ache that was somehow beautiful.
She wasnât just falling in love with the crowdâshe was falling in love with the way they loved him. The way their energy fed into his, creating this endless loop of give and take. It was magnetic, intoxicating, and she hated how much she wanted to be part of it.
As the show reached its climax, the band hit the frenetic rhythm of kiwi. The crowd lost their minds, screaming and jumping in unison as the pounding bassline and frantic guitars drove the song forward like a freight train.
Harry was in his element now, prowling the stage like a lion in a cage, his energy sharp and electric. He threw himself into the song with reckless abandon, his voice raw, his body moving like it was possessed by the music.
She felt it too, her fingers sliding over the strings with an intensity she didnât know she was capable of. She played like she wanted to leave a mark, like she wanted the crowd to feel every note down to their bones.
Harry spun toward her at one point, his eyes catching hers as he sang.
All over me itâs like I paid for it, like I paid for itâIâm gonna pay for this
The line wasnât even hers, maybe thrown toward her, sure, but the way he locked eyes with her as he belted it made her throat tighten. There was something feral about the way he looked at her, something that sent a jolt of adrenaline straight to her chest.
She didnât look away this time.
By the time the last note of the encore faded into the ether, the crowd was still screaming, still begging for more. Harry stood at the edge of the stage, his hands pressed together in a gesture of thanks, his smile wide and genuine.
YN hung back, her guitar still slung over her shoulder, her chest heaving from the exertion of the last few songs. She watched him bask in the adoration of the crowd, the way they screamed his name like a prayer.
And for the first time, she felt it too.
That pull. That strange, inexplicable magnetism that made it impossible to look away.
The final notes of the encore still buzzed in her ears as she followed the band offstage, the roar of the crowd trailing behind them like an echo that refused to fade. Her body ached in places she didnât know could acheâher fingers stiff from hours of playing, her calves burning from the constant movementâbut the adrenaline still surged, making her feel weightless and untouchable.
She had done it. They had done it.
The opening night had gone off like a firework, every moment exploding brighter and louder than the last. From the first chord to the final bow, it had been electric. And for once, she didnât feel like just another cog in the machine. On that stage, with the lights scorching her skin and the crowdâs energy feeding her soul, she felt like a part of something massive. Something alive.
And Harryâdespite everythingâhad been a part of that.
Theyâd had moments up there, brief but undeniable, where their music seemed to sync in ways their personalities couldnât. Heâd looked at her like she was the only other person in the room, and sheâd felt it, that spark. That rare kind of connection that made everything else fade into static.
She thought maybe heâd felt it too.
Backstage was a flurry of chaos, but it was the kind of chaos that came with relief. Crew members slapped high-fives, a few whooped into the cavernous space, and Mitch grinned at her as they stowed their gear.
âThat was something, huh?â he said, leaning back against the wall, his guitar case resting at his feet.
âYeah,â she said, breathless. âIt really was.â
Her eyes darted toward Harry, who was standing in the middle of it all, his floral suit catching the dim light of the hallway. He was talking to a few crew members, his laugh echoing down the corridor, easy and loud.
YN lingered on the edge of the group, still cradling her guitar, waiting for him to glance her way. Say something. Anything.
But he didnât.
Instead, he clapped Mitch on the shoulder as he passed by, murmured something low and warm to the bassist, then disappeared down the hallway, flanked by his manager and stylist.
Her stomach sank.
Seriously?
The after-party was just as loud as the show, a whirlwind of congratulatory cheers and glasses clinking in a private room at some sleek hotel downtown. The crew was there, the band, a few industry types YN didnât recognize but figured she should. She was used to this kind of thingâsmall, exclusive, the kind of celebration that was more about appearances than funâbut tonight it felt different.
She stuck close to Mitch for most of it, nursing a vodka sour and letting the buzz of conversation wash over her.
âRelax,â Mitch said at one point, leaning against the bar beside her. âYou look like youâre still waiting for the second set to start.â
âIâm good.â She mumbled a little too quickly.
His brow arched, but he didnât press.
Across the room, Harry was the center of attention, as always. He moved through the crowd like he belonged there, laughing and chatting like he hadnât just poured himself out on stage for hours. She couldnât help but watch him, the way people gravitated toward him, how he seemed to light up every corner of the room he stepped into.
But he didnât look at her. Not once.
She tried not to let it bother her, but it did.
After everything on stage, after every glance, every unspoken connection, it felt like he was intentionally keeping his distance. Like heâd flipped some invisible switch, cutting her off before she could even figure out what had changed.
By the time the party wound down, YN had had enough. She slipped out quietly, her guitar case slung over her shoulder, and headed for the lobby. The cool night air hit her like a slap when she stepped outside, the noise of the party muffled behind the heavy glass doors.
She stood there for a moment, letting the cityâs chaos replace the strange hollowness that had settled in her chest.
She didnât know why sheâd expected something different from him. He was Harry Styles, after allâthe man who could command a room with a smirk, who probably had a million other things on his mind besides her.
But still, she couldnât shake the feeling that something had shifted tonight.
Maybe it was the crowd, or the way the music had felt like it was tying them together in ways they didnât quite understand. Maybe it was the way heâd looked at her, like she was part of it, part of him.
Or maybe she was imagining it all.
She sighed, adjusting her grip on the guitar case as she started down the empty street toward her hotel.
Behind her, the sound of the door opening and closing made her stop.
But when she turned, it wasnât him.
It was just some random guest stepping out for a smoke, their lighter flaring briefly in the dark.
She shook her head and kept walking.
The morning after opening night started with a headache.
The alarm went off at five, its shrill tone slicing through the still-dark San Francisco hotel room. YN groaned as she rolled over and slapped it off, her limbs heavy with the weight of too little sleep and too much tension. Her body ached from the showâher fingers stiff, her shoulders soreâbut the adrenaline still hadnât completely worn off.
She dressed in silence, pulling on denim shorts and an oversized hoodie, her hair shoved under a worn baseball cap. By the time she dragged her case and bookbag downstairs, the lobby was already filled with half-awake crew members milling around with to-go coffees and luggage carts. The band gathered near the hotel entrance, everyone moving slow, bleary-eyed.
Everyone but Harry.
He stood near the glass doors, sunglasses perched on his nose even though it was still too early for sunlight. His outfitâeffortlessly tailored black slacks and black tee, paired with boots that clacked against the marble floorâlooked like it belonged in a photoshoot, not a cramped tour bus ride down the coast. His hair was artfully disheveled, like it had been tousled by the same wind that carried his confidence.
YN hated that he didnât look tired. He looked perfect, unbothered, untouchable.
And, true to form, he didnât acknowledge her.
Not directly, anyway.
âMorning, Mitch,â Harry nodded, his voice smooth and low as he greeted the guitarist with a clap on the shoulder. He grinned at Sarah and made some easy joke that had her laughing quietly, her coffee held close to her chest.
She stood off to the side, shifting her weight between her feet, watching the scene unfold like an outsider looking through a frosted window.
She thought about last night. About how heâd looked at her on stage like the world had narrowed to just the two of them. About how he hadnât spoken a single word to her after.
She didnât understand it. She didnât understand him.
âLetâs get moving,â their tour manager barked, clapping his hands. âBus leaves in five.â
YN grabbed her things and followed the group outside, the cool morning air biting at her cheeks as they made their way toward the waiting bus.
The ride to Los Angeles was tense in the worst kind of way.
She had claimed a window seat near the middle of the bus, her headphones cranked up to drown out the low hum of conversation around her. She stared out at the Pacific Coast Highway, the ocean stretching endlessly to the right, the cliffs jagged and wild to the left. It shouldâve been peaceful, beautiful even, but she couldnât focus on anything but the gnawing irritation in her chest.
Harry was sitting three rows ahead, leaned back in his seat with one arm slung lazily over the headrest. He was talking to Sarah again, his voice low enough that YN couldnât hear the words, but the sound of it still grated on her nerves.
She wasnât sure why she cared so much. She didnât want to care.
If he wanted to ignore her, fine. She could ignore him right back.
By the time they reached LA, the tension had evolved into a quiet kind of war.
At the Greek Theater, the crew unloaded equipment, their movements brisk and practiced as they prepared for soundcheck. The sun blazed down on the open-air amphitheater, turning the white seats into a blinding sea of light.
YN was on edge, her patience wearing thinner with every passing hour. He still hadnât spoken to her, not even in passing. He was polite, distant, the way heâd been before opening night. Like nothing had changed. Like he hadnât spent the night before throwing glances her way that felt like they could peel her apart.
When he handed out notes during rehearsal, she barely looked at him, keeping her responses clipped and indifferent.
âGot it,â she muttered after one of his suggestions, her tone flat as she adjusted her guitar strap.
Harry blinked at her, his lips twitching into something that might have been surprise. âGood,â he said after a beat, turning his attention to Mitch without another word.
By the time the soundcheck wrapped, She was biting the inside of her cheek so hard it felt raw.
Later, while the rest of the band lingered backstage before the show, YN found herself leaning against the rail of the amphitheater, staring out at the empty seats. The sun had started to dip below the horizon, painting the sky in deep purples and oranges.
She didnât hear him approach.
âBeautiful, isnât it?â
The voice startled her, and she turned to find Harry standing a few feet away, his hands stuffed into the pockets of his trousers.
âYeah.â She breathed, her voice guarded. She didnât move closer.
He didnât say anything else, just stood there, his gaze fixed on the horizon. The silence between them stretched, heavy and awkward.
âSomething you need?â she asked finally, her tone sharper than she intended.
Harryâs head tilted slightly, his sunglasses reflecting the fading light.
âJust checking in.â
It felt like a lie.
âIâm good, Harryâ She mumbled, turning back toward the stage.
He didnât respond, and when she glanced over her shoulder a few moments later, he was already walking away.
Her fingers tightened around the rail, her chest heavy with frustration she couldnât quite name.
She hated this.
Hated the way he could make her feel so small, so seen, then turn around and act like she didnât exist.
It was like trying to hold onto water. The harder she gripped, the faster it slipped through her fingers.
-
Harry stood at the edge of the stage, soaking it all in. He bowed low, his sequined shirt catching the light, a grin breaking across his face. To the crowd, he was untouchableâa god in Gucci.
She followed Mitch and Sarah offstage, her steps quick and mechanical. She could feel Harry trailing behind them, his presence heavy even when she couldnât see him.
Backstage was chaos, as it always was after a show, but it didnât faze YN. She moved through the crowd of crew members and assistants like a ghost, ignoring the chatter, the congratulatory smiles.
Her heart was still racing, the adrenaline from the performance twisting into something darker, something restless.
âYou good?â
Mitchâs voice cut through the haze. He was leaning against the wall, his guitar case already packed, his expression calm but curious.
âYeah.âÂ
Lie.
Harry entered the dressing room a few minutes later, his presence shifting the energy in the space instantly.
He was laughing at something Sarah had said, his voice loud and warm, but the sound grated against YNâs nerves. She kept her back to him, pretending to be busy adjusting a loose string on her guitar.
She felt him glance her wayâshe could feel itâbut she didnât turn around.
Two could play this game.
The bus ride back to the hotel was unbearable.
YN had claimed a seat near the back, her headphones on, her gaze fixed on the passing city lights outside the window. She could see Harry a few rows ahead, his arm draped casually over the back of his seat as he chatted with the others.
He hadnât spoken to her all night, and now, sitting there in his own bubble of easy conversation and laughter, it was like she didnât exist.
Her frustration simmered, bubbling just below the surface.
She replayed the show in her head, each pointed glance, each lyric heâd aimed at her like an arrow. It felt like he was trying to send a message, but she couldnât decipher it.
Was he angry with her? Was this some kind of punishment? Or was he just playing a game she didnât know the rules to?
She clenched her jaw and turned up the volume on her music, drowning out the sound of his voice.
By the time they reached the hotel, her nerves were shot.
She practically stormed off the bus, her guitar case banging against her thigh as she made her way to the elevators.
The band and crew trailed behind her, their voices a low hum of exhaustion and contentment. Harry was in the middle of the group, laughing softly at something Mitch had said.
YN pressed the elevator button harder than she needed to, willing it to come faster. She didnât know if she was more angry or confused. Maybe both.
The elevator doors slid open, and she stepped inside, leaning against the wall and closing her eyes as the others piled in.
She felt him before she saw him.
Harry stepped in last, taking a spot in the corner opposite her. He didnât look at her, didnât say a word, but his presence filled the small space like smoke, curling around her, suffocating.
The silence stretched as the elevator ascended, the soft ding of each passing floor the only sound.
When the doors opened on her floor, YN didnât wait for anyone to move. She pushed past them, her guitar case bumping against Harryâs shin as she stepped out.
âCareful.â He muttered under his breath, the word low but deliberate.
YN froze, her grip tightening on the case. She turned back, her jaw tight, her voice barely above a whisper âYou were in the way.â
Harryâs eyes flicked up to meet hers, and for a moment, the tension between them was almost unbearable.
But then he smiled. That infuriating, lopsided grin that always seemed to carry a thousand meanings âGoodnight, YN.â he breathed, his tone maddeningly calm.
And just like that, the elevator doors closed, taking him with it.
She stood there in the empty hallway, her chest heaving, her hands trembling against the strap of her guitar case.
She hated him.
And she hated that she didnât.
Nashville hit like a fever dream.
The kind of heat that stuck to your skin and turned the air thick, every breath tasting like concrete and sweat. YN stepped off the plane and into the chaos of arrivals, her carry-on slung over one shoulder and her nerves buzzing like a live wire. The overhead announcements droned on, blending with the chatter of passengers and the whir of suitcase wheels.
Behind her, the band followed, each of them bleary-eyed but quiet, the exhaustion of constant travel settling into their bones. Theyâd left Los Angeles behind with barely enough time to breathe, and now they were here. Another city. Another show.
Harry was in the middle of it all, of course.
He strode through the airport like he owned it, dressed in a casual white t-shirt and plaid trousers, his sunglasses pushed up into his messy hair. His carry-on was slung lazily over his shoulder, the strap resting on a ringed hand, and he moved with the kind of effortless ease that YN had learned to despise.
She hated how calm he looked. How composed. Like he hadnât spent the last two days pulling the same infuriating routineâignoring her during rehearsals, barely acknowledging her existence outside of the necessary, and throwing her those strange, pointed glances on stage.
She adjusted the strap of her own bag and turned away from him, focusing on the bustling terminal as they followed the signs toward baggage claim.
By the time they made it outside, the air was heavy with humidity, the sun dipping low on the horizon and casting long shadows across the tarmac. Their bus waited near the curb, sleek and black, the driver already loading their checked equipment and luggage into the belly of the vehicle.
YN stepped aside to let Mitch and Sarah board first, leaning against the side of the bus and tugging her baseball cap lower over her eyes. She was tired. Bone-tired. And the thought of spending another night in close quarters with Harryâs infuriating silence made her chest feel tight.
âYN.â
His voice came from behind her, low and steady, and it made her stomach flip in a way she refused to acknowledge.
She turned to find Harry standing a few feet away, his bag slung carelessly over his shoulder. He wasnât wearing his sunglasses now, and his green eyes caught the soft light of evening, sharp and clear.
âYeah?â she sighed, her tone flat.
Harry blinked at her, like he hadnât expected her to answer. âI, uhâŚâ He hesitated, running a hand through his hair. âYou left this.â
He held out a small notebook, the worn leather cover instantly recognizable. YNâs stomach twisted. She didnât even realize sheâd forgotten it.
âThanks.â She mumbled, reaching for it. Their fingers brushed, and the contact sent a shiver down her spine. She snatched the notebook quickly, shoving it into her bag.
For a moment, neither of them said anything. Harry shifted his weight, his gaze flicking past her to the bus, like he was trying to find an escape route.
âLong flight,â he said finally, the words almost awkward.
She raised an eyebrow. âYouâre making small talk now?â
His mouth twitchedâsomething between a smirk and a grimace. âJust trying tâbe polite.â His voice was low, almost teasing.
She didnât know why that annoyed her so much. âWell, donât strain yourself,â she shot back, her words sharper than she intended.
Harryâs expression shifted, the teasing edge dropping away. For a moment, he looked at her like he wanted to say something, something important, but then he just shook his head.
âRight.â he said softly. âGood tâknow where we stand.â
Before she could respond, he turned and climbed onto the bus, leaving her standing there in the heavy Nashville air, her pulse thundering in her ears.
She clenched her jaw, gripping the strap of her bag so tight it hurt.
What the hell was that supposed to mean?
With a frustrated sigh, she followed him onto the bus, determined to avoid him for the rest of the night.
The hotel lobby was as tired as YN feltâdimly lit, decorated in muted earth tones that looked like they hadnât been updated since the 90s. A long line of leather couches stretched across one side, mostly empty now that the band and crew had already checked in and trudged upstairs to collapse into their rooms.
She stood at the reception desk, trying to ignore the looming presence of Harry a few feet behind her as she slid her ID across the polished counter.
She croaked out her first and last name, her voice tight with exhaustion. âShould be a reservation under that.â
The receptionist, a young woman with tired eyes and a forced smile, tapped at her keyboard. For a moment, YN let herself hope this would go smoothly.
âAhâŚâ the woman began, her smile faltering as she looked up at her apologetically. âIt seems thereâs been an error in the system.â
Her stomach sank. âWhat kind of error?â
âIt looks likeâŚâ The receptionist squinted at her screen, then back at YN. âYour booking and Mr. Stylesâ booking were combined. Thereâs only one room reserved for both of you.â
She blinked, certain she must have misheard. âWhat?â
âOne room,â the woman repeated, her voice overly kind, like she was delivering bad news to a child.
A low sound from behind her drew YNâs attention, and she turned to see Harry standing there, his lips twitching into the faintest hint of a smirk.
âOf course,â he muttered, more to himself than to her.
YN turned back to the receptionist, her pulse spiking with frustration. âOkay, well, can you fix it? Book me another room?â
The woman winced. âIâm so sorry, but weâre completely booked out. Between your show and a large business conference in town, thereâs nothing available.â
âNothing?â
The receptionist shook her head. âNothing.â
YN stared at her for a long moment, hoping that if she stood there long enough, a solution would magically present itself. When it didnât, she let out a slow breath, trying to keep her voice calm. âOkay, then Iâll sleep on the tour bus,â she said finally, her tone clipped.
âI wouldnât recommend that,â the receptionist replied, her voice filled with polite concern. âItâs not very safe overnight, and the temperatures are supposed to drop quite a bit.â
YNâs jaw clenched. She didnât care about the temperature. She cared about not being stuck in a hotel room with Harry Styles for an entire night.
âYou can take the bed,â Harry said suddenly, his voice low and casual.
She whipped around to look at him, her exhaustion briefly replaced by irritation. âExcuse me?â
âYou can take the bed,â he repeated, his hands shoved into the pockets of his trousers. He didnât look tired like she did; if anything, he looked almost amused. âIâll take the couch. Problem solved.â
His eyebrows lifted, but he didnât continue the way she half-expected him to. He acknowledged her silence with a shrug. âSuit yourself.â
YN turned back to the receptionist, her last shred of hope dying as the woman gave her a small, helpless smile.
âI really am sorry,â the receptionist said.
âYeah,â She muttered, grabbing her room key off the counter. âMe too.â
The elevator ride to their shared room was suffocating.
She stood with her arms crossed, leaning against the back wall, her eyes fixed on the digital floor numbers ticking upward. He stood on the opposite side, his hands still in his pockets, his gaze fixed somewhere over her shoulder.
She could feel the tension between them, thick and heavy, like it had been building all day.
When the elevator dinged and the doors slid open, she practically bolted into the hallway, her shoes squeaking slightly against the polished floor as she found their room and slid the keycard into the lock.
The room was small but clean, decorated in the same neutral tones as the lobby. There was one queen-sized bed, a narrow couch by the window, and a small desk tucked into the corner.
YN set her bag down near the door, letting out a long breath. This was going to be a long night.
Harry stepped in behind her, the door clicking shut softly as he took in the room. âWell,â he said after a beat, his voice laced with dry humor. âCozy.â
YN shot him a glare over her shoulder. âDonât start.â
âI didnât do anything,â he replied, raising his hands in mock innocence.
She rolled her eyes, grabbing her carry-on and unzipping it with more force than necessary. She pulled out her pajamas and stalked toward the bathroom, muttering under her breath.
âYouâre welcome to take the bed!â Harry called after her.
She didnât reply, only slamming the bathroom door behind her.
Inside, she leaned against the sink, gripping the edge tightly as she stared at her reflection in the mirror. Her hair was a mess under her hat, her face flushed with irritation and exhaustion.
This was the last thing she needed.
She splashed cold water on her face, changed into her pajamas, and forced herself to take a deep breath before stepping back out into the room.
Harry was already sprawled out on the couch, his long legs dangling off one end, one arm draped lazily over his eyes. He looked too comfortable, like he wasnât even remotely fazed by the situation.
âGoodnight, YN.â he smiled, his voice soft and teasing, muffled by his arm.
She didnât bother replying, instead climbing into the bed and yanking the blanket up to her chin. She rolled onto her side, facing the wall, her back to him.
But even as she lay there in the dark, her body exhausted and her mind racing, she couldnât ignore the steady sound of his breathing filling the room.
And somehow, that made sleep feel even further away.
The night dragged on like a bad song on repeat.
YN tossed and turned, the sheets tangling around her legs no matter how many times she tried to straighten them. The bed itself wasnât the problemâit was soft enough, even if the pillows were too firm. The issue was the room. Or rather, the person in the room.
Harryâs breathing was steady and slow, almost annoyingly calm, like he had drifted off with zero trouble. The faint rustle of the blanket heâd pulled off the back of the couch only made it worse. She hated knowing he was just a few feet away, as oblivious and infuriating in sleep as he was awake.
Every time she closed her eyes, she could feel the weight of him in the room, like his presence was something tangible pressing against her skin. She could picture him sprawled out on the narrow couch, too long for it, his hair a wild mess against the pillow. He had to be uncomfortable, but of course, he made even that look effortless.
She clenched her teeth and turned over again, dragging the blanket over her head.
She must have fallen asleep at some point, because the next thing she knew, pale sunlight was streaming through the thin hotel curtains, casting faint patterns on the wall. The sound of movement drew her attention, and she rolled onto her back, blinking against the light.
Harry was already up.
He stood near the desk, pulling a fresh shirt over his head, the muscles in his back shifting under smooth skin. His hair stuck up in every direction, and there was a faint red line on his cheek, probably from the couch pillow.
YN groaned softly, her voice gravelly from sleep, and sat up.
He turned at the sound, his eyes catching hers for a split second before he gave her a lopsided smile. âMorning,â he rasped, voice low and rough.
She ignored the strange flutter in her chest and instead rubbed at her face, her palms digging into her eyes. âWhat time is it?â
âJust past seven,â Harry replied, glancing at his watch.
âWhy are you up so early?â she asked, her voice still heavy with sleep.
âCouldnât stay on that couch any longer,â he said with a shrug, running a hand through his hair. âFigured Iâd let you sleep.â
She raised an eyebrow, more suspicious than grateful. âHow thoughtful of you.â
Harry smirked, leaning against the desk. âIâm full of surprises.â
YN swung her legs over the side of the bed, the cool floor against her bare feet waking her up a little more. She glanced at the couch, the blanket crumpled in a heap at one end, and felt the tiniest pang of guilt. He might be irritating, but even she had to admit that couch looked like hell.
âDid you even sleep?â she asked, her voice softer now.
âEnough,â he said, brushing it off with a shrug. âYou?â
She hesitated. She wanted to lie, to tell him sheâd slept like a rock just to avoid giving him the satisfaction. But she was too tired to keep up the pretense. âBarely,â she muttered, running a hand through her hair.
Harry didnât say anything, but his smirk softened into something else, something almost understanding. âWeâve got a couple hours before soundcheck,â he said after a beat, pushing off the desk. âIâll grab coffee if yâwant.â
She blinked at him, caught off guard by the offer.
âYouâre being weirdly nice this morning,â she drawled, narrowing her eyes.
Harry grinned, all teeth. âDonât get used to it.â
Before she could respond, he slipped out the door, leaving her sitting there in the quiet room, her heart beating just a little faster than it should have been.
When Harry returned twenty minutes later, carrying two steaming cups of coffee and a bag of pastries from the shop across the street, YN couldnât bring herself to be annoyed.
But she didnât thank him either.
She wasnât sure why, but the tension between them felt different in the light of day. Lighter. Less suffocating. Still there, sure, but not as sharp.
She sipped her coffee in silence, watching as Harry lounged on the edge of the bed, scrolling lazily through his phone.
By ten that morning, they were at the Ryman.
The iconic auditorium was a cathedral of music, its wooden pews and high ceilings steeped in history. YN had played a lot of venues over the years, but this one felt different. Sacred, almost.
The crew was already bustling around the stage, running cables and testing equipment as the band took their places for a quick run-through. She strapped on her guitar and adjusted the amp settings, the familiarity of the process grounding her.
âAlright,â the stage manager called, his voice echoing in the empty hall. âLetâs run it from Carolina. Just a quick one, then youâre free for the day.â
Harry stepped up to the mic, giving a thumbs-up to the techs at the soundboard. His voice rang out clear and confident, slipping into the song like it was second nature.
YN played her part without thinking, her fingers moving easily over the strings. But she couldnât help noticing the way Harry was watching her again.
It wasnât as obvious as beforeâjust the occasional glance, fleeting but deliberate, like he was checking her reaction to something she couldnât quite place.
Her stomach twisted. She didnât know if it was frustration or something else entirely.
They wrapped up soundcheck in record time, the stage manager dismissing them with a wave of his clipboard.
âAlright, folks. Enjoy your free day. Donât get into too much trouble.â
The band dispersed quickly, everyone eager to make the most of the rare downtime. Sarah and Mitch mentioned something about finding a good barbecue spot, and within minutes, YN found herself standing outside the Ryman, squinting in the bright Tennessee sun.
She was about to head back toward the hotel when Harryâs voice stopped her.
âHey, Hendrix.â
She turned to see him leaning against the tour bus, his sunglasses perched on his nose. She hummed in response, holding her hand above her eyes to shield the sun.
He grinned, his voice light and teasing. âYouâre not gonna spend the whole day in the room, are you?â
âWhatâs it to you?â
âNothing,â he said with a shrug, pushing off the bus. âJust thought you might want to come along.â
âCome along where?â
He slipped his hands into his pockets, tilting his head in that infuriatingly casual way he had. âI was thinking about exploring. But if youâd rather sulk in the hotelâŚâ
She glared at him, her irritation mixing with reluctant curiosity. âIâm not sulking,â she muttered.
âProve it.â His grin widened.
She sighed, weighing her options. She could spend the rest of the day alone, aimlessly wandering the city, or⌠she could let Harry drag her into whatever chaos he had planned.
Against her better judgment, she took a step closer.
âFine.âshe grumbled. âBut if you annoy me, Iâm leaving.â
Harry laughed, a warm sound that somehow made her chest feel lighter. âDeal.â
As they made their way through the streets of Nashville, YN couldnât help but notice how easy it was to fall into step with him.
They wandered through the heart of downtown, the air thick with the sound of live music spilling out of honky-tonk bars and the faint smell of fried food. He seemed relaxed, his usual sharp edges dulled by the easy rhythm of the day.
They ducked into a record store, where Harry spent an obscene amount of time flipping through vinyls, offering commentary on the cover art of each one.
âLook at this,â he said, holding up a copy of Fleetwood Macâs Rumours. He grinned at her, and for once, it felt less like a challenge and more like⌠something else.
YN raised an eyebrow as she glanced at the album he held up, the iconic cover staring back at her. âWhat about it?â she asked, folding her arms and leaning against the edge of the nearest display.
Harryâs grin shifted, softer now, almost boyish. âItâs a masterpiece. Donât tell me youâve never given it a proper listen.â
She rolled her eyes but couldnât suppress a small smirk. âOf course Iâve listened to it. Who hasnât? Donât go acting like youâve discovered fire.â
âAh, but have you really listened to it?â He stepped closer, tilting his head as he studied her expression like it might hold the answer. âLike, lying on the floor, headphones on, letting it ruin your entire mood?â
âThat sounds unnecessarily dramatic,â she said, but there was no real bite in her voice.
âDramatic? YN, this album is a rite of passage. The Chain? That bassline alone deserves its own religion.â
She couldnât help the laugh that escaped her, a quick, genuine sound that caught her off guard as much as it did him. âYouâre ridiculous,â she muttered, shaking her head.
He looked pleased with himself, his grin stretching wider. âIâll take that as a yes, then.â
âTake it however you want,â she shot back, moving past him to inspect a crate of blues records. Her fingers skimmed over the edges of the albums, her pulse oddly steady in the low hum of his company.
Harry hovered near, occasionally picking up a record and commenting on it. âYouâre quiet,â he noted after a few minutes, his tone lighter than sheâd expected.
âJust... looking,â she replied, hoping the words sounded casual enough.
âLooking for anything in particular?â
âNo.â The lie came easily.
He didnât press, and for once, she appreciated his silence. It gave her room to breathe, to figure out why the usual tension between them felt... different today. Lighter, maybe. Or maybe she was just imagining things.
After a moment, he spoke again, his voice quieter this time. âI like this, you know.â
She glanced up, caught off guard by the uncharacteristic sincerity in his tone. âLike what?â
âThis.â He gestured between them, as if it were the simplest thing in the world. âHanging out. Youâre tolerable when yânot glaring at me.â
She blinked, unsure whether to laugh or scowl. âThatâs your idea of a compliment?â
âTake it or leave it,â he said, his smirk returning but not fully masking the warmth behind it.
She rolled her eyes again but didnât look away, and for a brief moment, the air between them shifted. The faint tension that always seemed to linger was still there, but it wasnât sharp or heavy. It was something else entirely.
As the afternoon wore on, the tension that had been brewing between them seemed to fade, replaced by something quieter.
They grabbed lunch at a hole-in-the-wall diner Harry insisted on, where they shared a plate of fries and argued over whether ketchup or mayo was the superior dipping sauce.
âKetchup,â YN said, dipping another fry.
Harry shook his head, mock disappointment written all over his face. âI expected better from you.â
She rolled her eyes but couldnât help the laugh that bubbled out of her.
By the time they made their way back to the hotel, the sun was sinking low, painting the sky in hues of orange and pink. She felt lighter, like the weight of the past few days had lifted, if only for a little while.
As they reached the elevator, Harry glanced at her, his expression softer than sheâd ever seen it.
âThanks for coming along,â his voice was quiet but sincere.
She hesitated, surprised by the sudden vulnerability in his tone. âYeah, well⌠it was better than sulking.â
He smiled, and for a moment, the tension between them didnât feel so heavy.
The hotel room was quiet, the kind of stillness that settled into your bones and made you feel the weight of the day. After their spontaneous exploration of Nashville, she had parted ways with Harry in the hallway. He mentioned something about meeting up with Mitch, tossing her a casual, âSee you later,â before disappearing down the corridor.
YN had nodded but hadnât said much else. She wasnât sure if she was relieved or annoyed that he was leaving for the night.
After a long shower, she tugged on an oversized band teeâsome faded thing sheâd thrifted years agoâand a pair of soft cotton shorts. Her damp hair clung to her shoulders as she padded barefoot around the room, her phone in one hand as she scrolled through texts from her family.
Dad: Donât forget to drink water. You sound so busy. Call us when you have time.
Younger sibling: lol saw a vid of harry styles crowd at your show. howâs that going???
She smiled faintly at the last one, shaking her head as she typed a quick response.
It wasnât until sheâd tossed her phone onto the bedside table that she remembered the little stash sheâd hidden away.
She opened her suitcase, digging past neatly folded shirts and random cables until her fingers brushed against an emptied bag-balm tin, where she hid a pre-roll. She grinned to herself, pulling it out along with the battered cherry red lighter she always kept with it.
YN grabbed her guitar and wandered to the deep window sill, settling into it like a cat in the sun. She pushed the window all the way up, the night air warm against her skin as it rushed into the room. Nashville stretched out before her, the faint glow of the city lights mixing with the distant hum of passing cars.
She tucked the joint between her lips, the flame of the lighter flickering as she lit the tip. She took a slow drag, letting the smoke curl through her lungs and settle into her chest before she exhaled out into the open air.
The buzz hit quickly, a soft warmth unfurling in her limbs. She leaned back against the window frame, her guitar resting comfortably on her lap as she started to strum.
The notes came easily, her fingers gliding over the strings as she played whatever came to mind. A soft, haunting melody took shape. She kept her voice low, just above a whisper, the lyrics spilling from her lips like they were meant for the quiet night.
Spent my days with a woman unkind, smoked my stuff and drank all my wine
The joint hung from her lips as she sang, her voice airy and unpolished, but easy.
Made up my mind to make a new start, going to California with an aching in my heartÂ
She was so lost in the song, the feel of the strings beneath her fingers, that she didnât hear the door open.
Harry stepped inside, the door clicking shut softly behind him. He paused, his eyes catching on the scene in front of himâthe open window, YN perched on the sill with her guitar, the smoke from the joint curling lazily in the dim light.
She didnât notice him at first, too wrapped up in the song. Her voice was soft and raw, carrying just enough emotion to make the lyrics hit harder than they should have.
Harry stayed where he was, leaning against the wall near the door, arms crossed as he listened. He wasnât sure why he didnât announce himself right away. Maybe it was the way she seemed so unguarded, so lost in her own little world. It felt wrong to interrupt.
Her fingers lingered on the last note of the song, letting it fade softly into the warm night air. She leaned her head back against the window frame, the faint hum of the guitar strings still vibrating against her skin.
The room was quiet now, the only sound the distant buzz of traffic outside. She thought she was aloneâuntil a flicker of movement caught her eye.
Her head snapped up to see Harry stepping closer, his strides slow and deliberate. He didnât say anything, didnât smirk or crack one of his usual jokes. He just moved, quiet and assured, until he stopped by the desk next to the window.
He sank into the chair with a soft creak, still close enough that YN could feel the heat of his presence.
Her heart stuttered, but she didnât acknowledge him outright. Not yet.
Instead, she glanced at him briefly, her eyes meeting his for a fraction of a second before returning to the guitar in her lap. Her fingers idly plucked at the strings, pulling out a soft, wandering melodyânot another song, just sound to fill the silence.
Harry stayed quiet, leaning back in the chair as his gaze followed the slow, practiced movements of her hands.
When she paused, fingers hovering over the frets, the faint smell of smoke still curling in the air, Harryâs attention shifted.
Without a word, he reached for the joint resting between her fingers near the neck of the guitar. His movements were smooth, casual, like heâd done it a hundred times before.
YN didnât stop him, but her lips parted slightly in surprise, her pulse quickening as his hand brushed against hers.
He brought it to his lips, the faint ember at the tip flaring as he inhaled. The smoke curled lazily between them, filling the small space with a warmth that felt heavier than the summer air outside.
She watched him, her fingers still resting lightly on the strings, the unfinished melody hanging between them.
He exhaled slowly, his gaze flicking back to hers as the smoke dissipated into the room. For a moment, neither of them said anything.
The quiet wasnât uncomfortableâit was something else. Something charged, like the tension from the last few days had found a new way to manifest itself.
YN finally broke the silence, her voice low and rough. âDidnât realize you smoked.â
Harryâs lips curved into a faint smile, the kind that didnât give anything away. âDidnât realize you played Zeppelin.â
Her eyes narrowed slightly, her lips twitching as she fought the urge to smile back.
âDonât stop playing,â he murmured, leaning back in the chair and tipping his head toward the window.
YN hesitated for a moment, her gaze lingering on him before she shifted the guitar back into place.
She didnât play for him. Not really. But as the quiet notes filled the room again, she couldnât help but notice how close he was, how the faint smell of smoke and something distinctly Harry seemed to blur the edges of everything else.
The melody was unmistakable, a classic she knew by heart. Slow, deliberate, and wordless, the tune drifted into the still night air. She tilted slightly, fingers brushing over the strings with a lightness that made it feel effortless.
Harry stayed in the chair by the desk, close enough that she could feel the weight of his presence but far enough that he seemed content to linger in the space between them.
He didnât say anything. Didnât interrupt.
His eyes flickered between her and the view outside, where the skyline blinked faintly in the distance. He seemed lost in thought, the faint haze of smoke from the joint twisting lazily around him.
The rhythm of her playing was slow, hypnotic, like it had seeped straight from her fingertips into the quiet air. She didnât look at him directly, but she could feel his attention, even when it wasnât on her.
When the joint burned low between his fingers, Harry leaned forward, resting his elbows on his knees as he turned toward her. He lifted it to her lips, careful not to disrupt her playing, his movements casual but precise.
YN paused for just a fraction of a second, caught off guard by the gesture, but she let it happen. Her lips closed around it, inhaling deeply as her fingers continued their soft rhythm across the strings.
He stayed there for a moment, watching her before leaning back in the chair and taking the joint back between his own lips.
The smoke lingered between them, faint and warm, curling like an unspoken connection.
The song continuedâsoft, wistful, and unhurried. Her focus shifted to the melody, letting it guide her as Harry flicked his gaze between her hands, her face, and the view beyond the window.
Every so often, heâd lean forward again, passing the joint to her silently, his movements slow and unhurried. It felt strangely intimate, the quiet exchange, the way their hands brushed in the dim light.
Neither of them spoke, but the silence wasnât uncomfortable. It was heavy, yes, but not with tension. It felt⌠deliberate.
When YN finally let the last note of the song fade into the air, her hands stilled on the guitar.
He didnât say anything right away. He leaned back in the chair, the joint burning low between his fingers as his gaze lingered on her for just a moment too long.
âYou should do that more often,â he said softly, his voice rough around the edges.
She raised an eyebrow, her lips curving into the faintest smirk. âPlay Floyd?â
âPlay anything,â he replied, taking one last drag before stubbing the joint out on the edge of the ashtray sheâd left by the window. âOr keep me guessing.â
YN shifted the guitar off her lap, leaning it gently against the window sill. She crossed her arms, the soft night air brushing against her bare legs as she glanced at Harry. âItâs my job to play for you, Harry.â
His head tipped slightly, his green eyes narrowing as he considered her. âThat why yâwere playing now?â
She scoffed, leaning her shoulder against the window frame. âNo. But itâs why Iâm here, isnât it? To play what you want to hear. To make your shows sound good.â
Harry didnât react immediately. He stayed leaned back in the chair, the now-extinguished joint resting in the ashtray beside him. When he finally spoke, his voice was calm, almost lazy.
âYou think thatâs all youâre here for?â
âThatâs what it feels like sometimes,â she muttered, her words laced with the kind of honesty she didnât usually let herself share. âYouâve got everything planned, Harry. The look, the sound, the crowd. You donât need me.â
His lips curved into a faint, humorless smile. âIf I didnât need you, you wouldnât be here.â
YN frowned, tilting her head. âIs that supposed to make me feel better? Like Iâm just another piece of the machine?â
Harry leaned forward then, his elbows resting on his knees as he met her gaze. The air between them felt heavier now, his next words slow and pointed. âYouâre not just a piece. And you know it.â
For a moment, she didnât know how to respond. She hated the way her pulse quickened under his stare, the way his voiceâlow and roughâseemed to wrap around her like smoke.
She turned her head slightly, looking out at the view instead of him. âYou donât act like it,â she mumbled.
He let out a low laugh, though there was no humor in it. âAnd how do I act, YN? Enlighten me.â
She hesitated, then turned back to face him, her arms still crossed over her chest. âYou act like Iâm just⌠there. Like you can turn me on and off when it suits you. Like I donât matter unless Iâm standing on stage next to you.â
His jaw tightened, his gaze never wavering from hers. âThatâs not true.â
It was.
âCouldâve fooled me.â
The silence that followed felt like it stretched forever. The only sound was the faint hum of traffic outside and the soft creak of the chair as Harry shifted his weight.
âYou think I donât notice you?â he said finally, his voice quieter now but no less intense.
She blinked, caught off guard by the question. âWhat?â
Harry stood then, closing the distance between them in just a stride. He stopped just shy of the window, leaning one hand against the frame as he looked at her.
âYou think I donât notice you,â he repeated, his voice steady, almost accusing. âEvery time you play, every time you step on that stage. Every time you look at me like youâre trying to figure out if Iâm about to push you away again.â
YN swallowed hard, her throat suddenly dry. âYou donât notice anything,â she said, though the words came out weaker than she intended.
His gaze dropped to her lips for the briefest moment before snapping back to her eyes. âI notice everything,â he countered softly.
Her breath hitched, and she hated the way it made her feel like she was on uneven ground. âThen why do you act like this? Why do you make it so hard?â
âBecause yâmake it hard,â he shot back, his voice low but sharp. âYou shut me out before I even get the chance to try.â
YN laughed then, a hollow, bitter sound. âYouâve never tried, Harry.â
âAnd youâve never let me.â he said, the words falling between them like a challenge.
The weight of his stare was suffocating, and for a moment, YN didnât know what to say. She could feel the tension crackling between them, thicker now, more volatile.
âBullshit.â She turned back to the window, her voice softer when she spoke again. âThis is pointless.â
Harry didnât move, his hand still resting on the window frame as his eyes lingered on her.
âMaybe,â he said quietly. âBut it doesnât mean itâs not real.â
YN closed her eyes, letting his words hang in the air as the night wrapped around them. Neither of them said anything else, but the silence spoke louder than anything they couldâve said.
The morning came earlier than YN wanted it to. Sheâd barely slept, the weight of the night before hanging over her like a low fog.
The room was quiet when she woke, the faint hum of the air conditioning filling the stillness. Harryâs side of the room was empty, the crumpled blanket on the sofa the only sign heâd stayed at all.
YN sat up slowly, rubbing the heel of her hand against her eyes as the memory of their conversation came rushing back. She didnât know if she regretted itâwhat theyâd said, what they hadnât saidâbut she knew it had left her chest feeling heavier than it had in weeks.
She glanced at the clock. They had a longer rehearsal today, prepping for the Ryman show tomorrow. If she didnât hurry, sheâd risk being late.
With a groan, she threw off the covers and got ready, pulling on a worn pair of jeans and a t-shirt before stuffing her guitar into its case and heading out the door.
The venue was already buzzing with activity when she arrived. The crew was setting up the stage, the hum of amps and feedback filling the auditorium as the band trickled in one by one. Mitch and Sarah were already there, chatting quietly by the drum kit, while Harry stood near the mic stand, flipping through a setlist with their tour manager.
YN felt his presence before she saw him, the memory of his words from the night before still fresh in her mind.
Maybe. But it doesnât mean itâs not real.
She swallowed hard, forcing herself to push the thought aside as she made her way to her usual spot on the stage.
âMorning,â Mitch gave her a small smile.
âMorning,â she replied, setting her guitar case down and pulling out the instrument.
Harry didnât say anything as she arrived, but she could feel his gaze flicker toward her for a brief moment before he turned his attention back to the stage manager.
Rehearsal started slow.
The band worked their way through the setlist, adjusting transitions, tightening harmonies, and fine-tuning every detail until the songs sounded like they could fill the Rymanâs historic walls without effort.
YN tried to focus, but it was harder than usual. Harryâs voice was everywhereâsmooth and commanding, sharp and playful, depending on the song. His presence filled the room, making it impossible to ignore him no matter how much she tried.
But he didnât speak to her directly. Not once.
It was infuriating, the way he could act like nothing had happened. Like they hadnât spent the night before saying things that neither of them had the courage to finish.
The longer the rehearsal went, the more it started to gnaw at her. By the time they reached Ever Since New York, her patience was wearing thin.
âHold on,â Harry said, waving a hand as the band finished the first chorus. He turned to Mitch. âThat transitionâs still too rushed. Can we stretch it out a little more?â
Mitch nodded, already adjusting his guitar.
She sighed quietly, her fingers hovering over the frets as she tried not to let her irritation show.
âSomething wrong?â He asked suddenly, his voice cutting through the space like a blade.
Her head snapped up, her eyes narrowing at him. âNo.â
âSure about that?â he asked, his tone light but his gaze sharp.
She stared at him for a moment, her chest tightening with frustration. âJust play the song, Harry.â
He smiled, but it didnât reach his eyes. âAlright. Again.â
By the time rehearsal wrapped, YN was drained. Her fingers ached from hours of playing, and her chest felt heavy with the weight of unspoken words.
As the crew began packing up, she slung her guitar over her shoulder and made her way toward the back of the stage, desperate for a moment alone.
But before she could disappear, Harryâs voice stopped her.
âHey! YN.â
Her grip on her guitar strap tightened as she turned to face him, the tension between them sharp enough to cut. He was standing near the edge of the stage, his expression carefully unreadable, though his shoulders were tense. âWhat?â she asked, her voice curt, already bracing herself.
He hesitated, just for a moment, then tilted his head slightly, his gaze flicking over her like he was trying to figure out how to start. âAbout last night.â
Her jaw tightened. She hadnât wanted to think about last nightâhow raw it had felt, how vulnerable sheâd let herself be for even a second. Sheâd been trying to shove it to the back of her mind all day. âWhat about it?â she said flatly, her tone leaving no room for softness.
Harryâs lips pressed into a thin line, and when he spoke again, his voice was lower, quieter, but it still held an edge. âYou meant what yâsaid, didnât you?â
She blinked at him, caught off guard. âWhat are you talking about?â
âYou think I donât notice you,â he mumbled, his words more a statement than a question.
Her stomach churned, but she forced herself to keep her expression steady. âI donât know why you care.â
âBecause I do,â he shot back, his voice sharpening, though he still kept it low enough that no one else could hear. âAnd donât act like you donât, either.â
Her chest tightened at the accusation, but she refused to let it show. âYouâve got a funny way of showing it,â she said coldly, crossing her arms.
His jaw ticked, and he took a small step closer. âYou think this is easy? Working with you? Being around you?â
She scoffed, the sound bitter in her throat. âRight. Because youâre so perfect to deal with, Harry.â
His eyes narrowed, the frustration clear now. âYou act like I donât care, but youâre the one whoâs been pushing me out since the start.â
Her breath caught, and for a second, she wasnât sure if it was anger or something else flaring in her chest. âBecause you make it impossible,â she snapped, a whisper. âYou walk around like the world revolves around you, and you expect everyone to just fall in line.â
âI donât expect anything from you, YN,â he said, his voice sharp, almost defensive. âExcept maybe to stop pretending like none of this matters to you.â
Her heart thudded against her ribs, the words cutting deeper than she wanted to admit. âWhat the hell is that supposed to mean?â
âIt means,â Harry paused, his voice quieter now but no less intense, âyouâve made it pretty damn clear youâd rather be anywhere else than hereâwith me, with this band. So donât act like Iâm the one who doesnât give a shit.â
YN stared at him, her chest heaving, her hands trembling at her sides. She wanted to throw something at him, wanted to shout, but the anger in her throat felt too tangled with something elseâsomething raw and uncertain.
Before she could think of a response, Harry shook his head, his lips curling into a bitter half-smile. âForget it,â he muttered, turning on his heel.
He stalked off the stage without looking back, his steps echoing in the empty auditorium.
YN stayed frozen where she was, her pulse pounding in her ears as his words replayed over and over again in her mind.
Youâve made it pretty damn clear youâd rather be anywhere else than here.
She hated that he was wrong.
And she hated even more that he wasnât entirely right.
The 25th came fast, bringing with it the weight of a sold-out show at the Ryman Auditorium. YN felt it the moment she woke upâthe low hum of tension in her chest, the kind that came from knowing she was about to step onto one of the most iconic stages in music history.
She moved through the day on autopilot, her interactions with the crew and band kept short and polite. She didnât have it in her to do more, not after yesterdayâs rehearsal, not after the argument with Harry that still lingered like a bruise.
By the time the sun dipped low over Nashville, casting long shadows across the city, the energy backstage was crackling with anticipation.
The band gathered in the wings as the crew finished final checks. She adjusted the strap of her guitar, her fingers tightening and loosening around the neck in a rhythm she didnât realize she was keeping.
Harry stood a few feet away, his presence as inescapable as ever. He was wearing a dark, tailored suit with just enough sparkle to catch the light, his shirt unbuttoned halfway down his chest. His hair was tousled in that perfectly imperfect way that she hated to admit suited him.
He hadnât spoken to her since yesterday. Not directly. And she hadnât gone out of her way to fix that.
âAlright, everyone ready?â the stage manager called, clipboard in hand.
The band nodded, one by one. Harry turned to them, his usual grin firmly in place, but there was a flicker of something else in his eyes when his gaze landed on YN.
âAll good?â he asked, his tone light but pointed, like he was challenging her.
She held his stare, refusing to let him see the nerves twisting in her chest. âGood.â
Harryâs smirk softened, but he didnât push it. âLetâs do this, then,â he said, turning back toward the stage as the house lights dimmed.
The roar of the crowd was deafening, a wall of sound that hit YN square in the chest as they stepped onto the stage.
The show opened strong, the band locking into the rhythm like clockwork. The crowd was electric, their cheers and screams filling every corner of the Ryman as Harry worked the stage, his voice weaving effortlessly through the music.
She focused on her playing, her fingers moving over the strings with practiced precision. She kept her eyes on the crowd, on Mitch, on the neck of her guitarâanywhere but Harry.
But it didnât matter. She could feel him, his presence pulling at her like a tide no matter how hard she tried to resist.
It was during Woman that the tension finally cracked.
The song had always been a crowd favorite, its sultry rhythm and teasing lyrics sending the audience into a frenzy. Tonight was no different.
Harry prowled the stage, the mic in one hand, his free hand gesturing to the crowd as they screamed the words back to him.
And then, without warning, his gaze found hers.
YNâs fingers faltered for the briefest moment, the wrong note slipping out before she corrected herself.
He smirked, slow and deliberate, like he knew exactly what he was doing.
He sang the chorus, his voice low and taunting as he turned to her fully, his body angled toward her now.
The crowd screamed, but they didnât notice the way his eyes stayed locked on hers, sharp and unrelenting.
Her chest tightened, but she refused to look away. Instead, she matched his intensity with her playing, her fingers flying over the strings like she could drown him out with sheer force.
The song ended in a crescendo, the applause erupting like thunder. Harry grinned at the crowd, blowing kisses into the sea of adoring faces, but when he turned back to the band, his smirk softened into something more subtle.
YN ignored him, focusing instead on retuning her guitar for the next song. But her hands were trembling slightly, and she hated herself for it.
The rest of the show passed in a blur of music and adrenaline.
By the time they reached the encore, she felt both exhausted and wired, her body caught in that strange limbo that came after hours on stage.
She risked a glance at Harry, and for a moment, she thought she saw something in his expression that mirrored her ownâa kind of quiet exhaustion, tinged with something unspoken.
But then he turned back to the crowd, his charm cranked up to full volume as he thanked them, his voice ringing out like a promise. âGoodnight, Nashville,â he said, his grin wide and infectious. âYouâve been incredible.â
The applause was deafening, the crowd chanting his name as the band took their final bow.
Backstage crew members moved in every direction, packing up equipment and shouting over the noise. The band had scattered, Mitch and Sarah disappearing into their dressing rooms while Harry lingered by the door, chatting with a few industry types whoâd come to the show.
YN slipped past the commotion, her guitar case slung over her shoulder as she made her way to the dressing room she was sharing with Mitch.
But before she could reach the door, Harryâs voice stopped her.
She froze, her grip tightening on the strap of her guitar. She turned slowly, her expression carefully neutral.
Harry was leaning against the wall, his shirt damp with sweat, his hair sticking to his forehead. He looked tired but satisfied, his usual post-show glow dimmed by something quieter.
âGood show tonight,â he said, his tone casual but his eyes sharper than his words.
YN raised an eyebrow, her lips curving into a faint smirk. âYou donât have to tell me that.â
He huffed a quiet laugh, his smirk returning. âYouâre impossible, you know that?â
âYeah,â she said, turning back toward her dressing room. âLook in the mirror, Harry.â She didnât wait for his response, didnât look back as she pushed open the door and let it close behind her.
September 26th, Chicago Theatre
Chicago was cold, a brisk wind biting at the edges of everything, but the theater itself felt electric. The second show on this leg of the tour, and the crowd roared louder than even the Nashville audience had. YN had expected itâChicago fans had a reputationâbut it still sent a jolt through her chest every time the applause hit.
Sheâd kept her head down all day, avoiding Harry as much as possible after the tension-filled Ryman show. He hadnât gone out of his way to talk to her either, which suited her just fine. The dynamic between them was still strained, but now it felt heavier, sharper, like a spring wound too tight.
On stage that night, they were professional, seamless even. The music flowed like second nature, and the crowd ate up every word Harry sang, every note the band played.
But Harryâs energy was different.
He stalked the stage like he had something to prove, his voice sharper, his movements purposeful. Every so often, his gaze would flicker toward her, his eyes dark under the stage lights, and her fingers would stumble, just for a second.
She hated that he could still affect her like that. Hated that her pulse quickened every time he looked at her like he was daring her to break.
When the show ended, she slipped out of the backstage chaos as quickly as she could, retreating to her dressing room before Harry could find her.
But she couldnât escape the feeling that their fight wasnât just simmeringâit was boiling over, and it was only a matter of time before it all spilled out.
September 27th, New York City Music Hall
New York felt different, brighter somehow. The Music Hall was massive, its gold interiors glinting under the lights, the kind of place that made you feel like you were a part of something monumental just by standing inside it.
YN was buzzing, but not because of the show. Tonight, sheâd finally made good on her promise to get her best friend in with VIP tickets.
Jude had shown up grinning from ear to ear, dragging along another friend, Sage, a boy she knew from a few mutual connections but hadnât spent much time with. She didnât mindâSage was friendly, good-looking in that casual, effortless way, and Jude seemed thrilled to be there.
The show was flawless, a whirlwind of sound and energy that left the crowd screaming for more by the end of the encore. YN felt good, better than she had in days. Maybe it was Judeâs energy, or the thrill of being home in New York, or the fact that sheâd managed to avoid Harryâs smirking glances on stage.
The energy backstage was lighter than usual, the post-show adrenaline mingling with the warmth of a half-empty box of beers someone had dragged in from a gas station. YN sat on a crate near the corner of the room, Jude and Sage perched close by, the three of them surrounded by the casual hum of conversation. Mitch was strumming idly on an unplugged guitar, Sarah was laughing with one of the techs, and the crew milled around, taking turns grabbing beers and tossing them to each other.
Harry sprawled in the cheap folding chair like it was a throne. His legs stretched out, boots crossed, beer bottle swaying loose between his fingers. He wore the smug indifference of someone who knew exactly how good he looked, from the sweat-mussed hair to the open collar of his shirt. A rock god slumming it in a room full of mortals.
Jude, of course, was eating it up, no matter how hard she tried not to. Her eyes kept drifting back, quick flickers like a moth circling a flame. YN could see the effort it took for her friend to focus on Sage, laughing a little too hard at his jokes, leaning just a bit too close. But the second Harry glanced their way, Judeâs attention snapped to him like a compass needle finding north.
âThis is VIP treatment?â Sage asked, flashing one of his trademark grins. He leaned forward, elbows on his knees, his bottle raised like a toast.
Jude latched onto the question, grateful for the distraction. âWelcome to the glamorous life of rock and roll,â she quipped, sweeping a hand around the dingy green room. Half-eaten takeout boxes, a broken amp shoved in the corner, and a stack of mismatched chairs that looked like theyâd collapse if you breathed wrong.
âIâm not complaining,â Sage said, his smile lingering, his tone dipping lower. âNot if it means I get to see you.â
The words hung in the air just a second too long.
YN felt the heat crawl up her neck before she even realized it. She took a long sip of her beer, keeping her face neutral, trying to ignore the heavy stare boring into the side of her head. She didnât have to look to know Harry was watching. She could feel it.
âCareful,â Harry drawled, finally breaking the silence. His voice was low, lazy, but there was an edge to it. âSay something like that, and you might get her hopes up.â
Sage blinked, caught off guard, then let out a short laugh, brushing it off. âI think she can handle it.â
âOh, sure,â Harry said, leaning back further in his chair. He swirled the beer bottle idly, staring into the amber liquid like it held secrets. âJust donât trip over yourself trying too hard. Youâd hate to embarrass yourself in front of the talent.â
Jude stiffened beside YN. Sageâs easy smile faltered, but he recovered fast, glancing at YN with a grin that didnât quite reach his eyes. âSpeaking of talent, you were incredible out there,â he said, his voice softer, directed at her now. âThat solo in Woman? Gave me chills.â
YN opened her mouth to respond, but Harry beat her to it.
âYeah, chills,â he echoed, not looking up from his bottle. âOr was it the AC in the venue finally kicking in? Hard to tell.â
Sage chuckled, but it was tight. Forced. âI meant it,â he said, still talking to YN. âYouâve got something special. You know that, right?â
Harry made a sound low in his throat, almost a laugh. Not quite. âSpecial,â he repeated, like he was tasting the word and finding it bitter. âSpecial enough tâget you a free beer and a backstage pass. Quite the honor.â
Sage turned to him now, his posture shifting, more squared. âThatâs not what I meant.â
Harryâs eyes finally lifted, locking onto Sage with a lazy sort of intensity. âNo?â
The word hung there, sharp and cold, daring Sage to keep going.
YN set her bottle down harder than she meant to, the dull thunk slicing through the thick air. âHarry.â
âWhat?â he said, the picture of innocence, except for the smirk curling at the edge of his mouth.
Her jaw tightened. âCan I talk to you outside?â
Harry raised his eyebrows, playing dumb. âOutside?â
âMm-hm.âShe hummed sharply, pushing herself to her feet. âNow.â
He took his time standing, unfolding himself from the chair with the kind of slow, deliberate movements that made every second stretch out like taffy. His boots scraped against the floor as he stood, towering over her but pretending not to notice. âYou sure yâdonât want to hash this out here? Weâve got an audience and everything. Could be fun.â
âOutside,â she repeated through gritted teeth.
Harry chuckled, low and infuriating. âAlright,â he said, gesturing toward the door like he was humoring her. âLead the way.â
As she brushed past him, she caught a glimpse of Jude, wide-eyed and silent, clutching her bottle like it was the only thing keeping her grounded. Sage sat back, his jaw tight, his smile long gone.
Behind her, Harry followed, his footsteps slow and heavy, like he wanted her to know he wasnât in any hurry. And as they stepped out into the cold, stale air of the hallway, she could still hear his laugh echoing softly, more to himself than anyone else.
That laugh made her want to scream.
The alley behind the Music Hall was quiet, the distant hum of city traffic echoing off the brick walls. The air was cool, a sharp contrast to the stuffy warmth of the backstage room. âWhat the hell was that?â she asked, spinning around to face him.
He took a slow sip of his beer, his eyes steady on hers. âWhat was what?â
âDonât play dumb,â she snapped, her arms crossing over her chest. âAll the comments. The interruptions. Whatâs your problem?â
Harry leaned against the wall, his head tilting slightly as he studied her. âNo problem,â he said lightly. âJust thought Iâd keep the conversation interesting.â
âInteresting?â she repeated, her voice rising. âYou were being a dick, Harry.â
His smile faded slightly, his gaze narrowing. âMaybe I donât like watching some guy who barely knows you act like heâs been waiting his whole life to kiss your ass.â
YN blinked, caught off guard by the bluntness of his words. âExcuse me?â
âYou heard me,â he murmured, his voice quieter now, but no less intense.
She stared at him, her chest tightening with a mix of frustration and something she didnât want to name. âWhy do you even care?â
He pushed off the wall, stepping closer until there was barely a foot of space between them. His eyes locked on hers, unflinching. âI dunno.â
Her breath hitched, her pulse hammering against her ribs. âThatâs not an answer.â
âSâthe only one youâre getting.â
For a long moment, neither of them moved, the tension between them thick and crackling like static electricity.
She finally broke the silence, her voice quieter now but no less sharp. âYou donât get to pull this shit, Harry. Not after everything.â
He looked at her for a moment longer, something unreadable flashing in his eyes. Then he took a step back, his smile returning, but it didnât reach his eyes.
âNoted,â he said simply, turning toward the door.
She watched him go, her fists clenched at her sides, her heart pounding with angerâand something else she didnât want to name.
She stayed in the alley long after Harry disappeared back inside. Her chest felt tight, her breathing uneven as she tried to process the exchange.
The words echoed in her mind, a sharp contrast to the smirk heâd worn when he walked away. She hated how he could get under her skin so easily, how his presence seemed to shift the air around her, how her anger at him never felt simple.
She leaned back against the cool brick wall, tilting her head up toward the night sky. The distant hum of traffic was a low comfort, a reminder of how big the world was outside of the theater, outside of him.
You donât get to pull this shit, Harry.
But he had, and he would again. That much she was sure of.
Harry didnât stay backstage for long. When he stepped back into the room, the energy was lighter without her there. Jude and Sage had moved on to laughing about something Mitch was saying, their voices rising over the clinking of bottles. Harry slipped past them with a nod, setting his empty beer bottle on the edge of a table.
âIâm heading out,â he said, his voice easy, casual, as if the last few minutes hadnât happened.
Mitch looked up, raising an eyebrow. âYou good?â
âYeah,â Harry grumbled, running a hand through his hair. âJust tired. Think Iâll head back to the hotel.â
No one questioned him further. Harry had a way of ending conversations before they started, and tonight was no different.
YN finally pushed herself off the wall, shaking off the lingering tension as best she could. The night air had cooled her temper slightly, though the weight of her frustration still hung in her chest.
When she stepped back inside, the room felt just as loud as before, though the dynamic had shifted.
Jude waved her over immediately, her grin as bright as ever. âHey! You okay?â
âFine.âYN said, her voice clipped. She didnât want to talk about what happened. Not now, not ever. âWhereâs Harry?â
âLeft a few minutes ago,â Mitch shrugged, strumming a lazy chord on the guitar heâd picked back up. âSaid he was tired.â
YNâs stomach twisted, though she couldnât pinpoint why.
âGood,â she muttered, grabbing a fresh beer from the nearly empty box. She twisted off the cap and took a long sip, letting the bitter taste settle her nerves.
Sage caught her eye, his grin still intact. âYou alright?â he asked, leaning closer.
âIâm fine,â she said sharply, the edge in her voice enough to make him hold up his hands in surrender.
Jude gave her a lookâsomething between concern and curiosityâbut didnât press further.
She leaned against the table, tuning out the chatter as the night dragged on. But no matter how hard she tried to focus on anything else, the memory of Harryâs wordsâand the look in his eyes when he said themârefused to leave her alone.
The night dissolved into a blur of laughter, music, and the bitter taste of cheap beer. YN had let herself go too far, her usual restraint eroded by the buzz in her veins and the way Sage kept leaning closer, his voice soft and insistent in her ear. She didnât even remember how the drinks had piled up so quickly, only that by the time Mitch and Sarah coaxed her into leaving, the room was spinning, and her legs felt unsteady beneath her.
Her friends had already left, a whirlwind of hugs and goodbyes as they promised to text when they made it back to campus. She barely remembered waving them off. Her focus had narrowed to just putting one foot in front of the other, the alcohol turning everything fuzzy around the edges.
Mitch had one of her arms draped over his shoulder, Sarah steadying her other side as they guided her into the hotel.
âYouâve got to start drinking water at some point,â Mitch said, his tone amused but laced with concern.
âWaterâs overrated,â YN mumbled, her voice slurred but determined.
Sarah snorted. âTell that to your liver.â
They maneuvered her into the elevator, Sarah punching the button for their floor. The quiet hum of the ride did little to settle the nausea building in YNâs stomach.
âAlright, this is us,â Mitch said when the doors opened on their floor. He adjusted his grip on her arm, but she shook her head, pulling away clumsily.
âNo, no, Iâve got it,â she insisted, stumbling forward and catching herself on the elevator wall.
âYou sure?â Sarah asked, eyebrows raised.
âTotally,â YN smiled, swaying slightly as she gave them a thumbs-up.
Mitch exchanged a look with Sarah, then sighed. âOkay, but if you fall over in the hallway, weâre not coming back down.â
âLove you guys,â She gave lopsided grin, blowing a haphazard kiss in their direction.
The walk to her room felt impossibly long. Her footsteps were uneven, and she clutched the wall for balance, the plush carpet doing little to steady her spinning head.
When she finally reached her door, she fumbled with the keycard, her hands clumsy and uncooperative. After several failed attempts, she groaned, leaning her forehead against the door in frustration.
But then her gaze shifted, and she realized something.
This wasnât her room.
The gold numbers on the door were too lowâshe was on the wrong floor.
Harryâs room.
Her thoughts moved sluggishly, like she was trying to wade through molasses, but one thing became clearâshe didnât want to go back and figure it out. Not tonight.
Her fist hovered over the door for a moment, hesitation flickering in the back of her mind. She could just go back to the elevator, figure out her room, and collapse in her own bed.
But the alcohol dulled her better judgment, and she knocked before she could stop herself.
The door opened after a beat, and there he was.
Harry stood in the doorway, barefoot, loose sweatpants that hung low on his hips. His hair was messy, like heâd been lying down, and his eyes flicked over her with a mix of confusion and concern.
âYN?â His voice was low and rough with sleep.
âHi.â She smiled, the word slurred and uneven.
He glanced down the hallway, then back at her. âYouâre drunk.â
She hummed, nodding her head and leaning heavily against the doorframe.
Harryâs lips twitched, but he didnât smile. âWhat are you doing here?â
âDunno,â she pouted, blinking up at him. âI was trying to find my room, butâŚâ She trailed off, waving a hand vaguely.
He sighed, stepping back and holding the door open wider. âCome in before someone calls security.â
The room was dim, lit only by a single lamp near the bed. She stumbled inside, kicking off her shoes and collapsing onto the armchair by the window.
Harry shut the door, leaning against it for a moment as he watched her.
âYou alright?â he asked.
âFantastic,â she mumbled, closing her eyes as the room spun around her.
âYou do this often?â he asked dryly. âStumbling drunk into the wrong room?â
âNot wrong,â she muttered, wagging a finger at him as she half-heartedly reached for the bottle of water on the table next to her. âI knew where I was going.â
He raised an eyebrow. âSure you did.â
She squinted at him, her lips twitching like she was trying to suppress a laugh. âYouâre awfully judgy for a guy wearing sweatpants with wine stains on them.â
Harry glanced down, frowning faintly at the faint red blotch near his knee. âItâs not wine,â he muttered.
âOh, I see,â She smirking as she leaned back in the chair. âFancy rock star canât even handle his grape juice.â
âThatâs rich,â he shot back, his tone calm but pointed. âComing from someone who canât even find her own room.â
She narrowed her eyes at him, but her expression softened into something quieter as the room fell silent. The edges of her bravado dulled under the weight of the alcohol and exhaustion, and she ran a hand through her hair as her voice dropped.
âWhy were you so mean to me?â
Harry stilled, the teasing edge slipping from his face.
âWhen?â he asked, though his tone made it clear he knew exactly what she was talking about.
âFrom the start,â she frowned, her words slurred but steady enough to cut. âYou act like you donât give a shit about me one minute, and then youââ She broke off, gesturing vaguely. âAnd then you pull this âI notice everythingâ bullshit.â
He didnât respond right away. Instead, he uncrossed his arms and moved toward her slowly, his footsteps soft against the carpet.
âYou should drink that,â he breathed, gesturing to the water bottle still sitting untouched on the table.
YN blinked at him, her frustration flaring again. âDonât change the subject, Harry.â
âIâm not,â he said evenly, crouching down in front of her. His eyes met hers, steady but guarded, and he grabbed the water bottle, holding it out. âDrink.â
She stared at him for a long moment, her chest tight. âYouâre annoying,â she muttered, taking the bottle from his hand.
âYouâre welcome,â he replied, his tone soft but laced with the faintest hint of amusement.
She took a few sips, grimacing as the cool liquid hit her empty stomach. Her head swam, the alcohol making her limbs heavy and uncooperative.
Harry stood, watching her carefully. âCome on.â He whispered after a moment, holding out his hand.
She frowned, looking at it suspiciously. âWhat are you doing?â
âHelping you into bed,â he said simply, his voice calm as he wriggled his fingers.
âIâm fine here,â she mumbled, slouching further into the chair.
âYouâre not sleeping in a chair, YN.â He sighed, his tone firmer now. âCome on.â
With a groan, she let him pull her to her feet, though her legs buckled almost immediately.
He caught her around the waist, shaking his head. âIâm fine.â He mocked breathily, a faint smile tugging on his lips, but he stifled it.
He guided her to the bed, steadying her as she sat down heavily on the edge. She looked up at him, her expression softer now, the alcohol dulling the sharpness of her frustration.
âYou didnât answer my question.â
Harry leaned down ever so slightly, brushing her hair behind her shoulders, thumbing away some of the mascara that smudged her cheeks. âGet some sleep, YN.â
âYouâre deflecting,â she pouted, though her voice was fading, her head already sinking toward the pillow.
Harry shifted, pulling the blanket over her as she curled onto her side.
âGoodnight.â he said, his voice low and unreadable. Silence. He frowned, taking a step back. âIâm sorry.â He whispered, although he knew she didnât hear him.Â
-
The tour bus hummed steadily as it sped toward Boston, the headlights slicing through the dark. It was well past midnight, and the world outside the window was nothing but a blur of shadows and the occasional glimmer of a passing car.
Everyone else was tucked away in their bunks, lulled to sleep by the gentle sway of the bus. The only sounds were the low murmur of the engine and the soft, absentminded strumming of an acoustic guitar.
YN sat curled up in the corner by the window, Mitchâs guitar resting on her lap. Her fingers moved lightly over the strings, coaxing out a quiet, meandering tuneânothing specific, just something to keep her hands busy. She stared out at the dark highway, the faint glow of her reflection in the glass blending with the streaks of passing lights.
Across the room, Harry sat at the small table, his laptop open in front of him. His shorts were bright pink, shirt faded and worn, hair messy and falling into his eyes. His fingers tapped softly on the keys, the blue glow of the screen reflecting off his rings.
For a while, neither of them said anything. The silence wasnât tense exactly, but it wasnât comfortable either. It felt like it had been stretched thin, like something fragile that might break if either of them pressed too hard.
She plucked a few more strings, then let the sound fade, her gaze flicking briefly toward Harry. âYou donât sleep, do you?â she asked, her voice soft but not without its usual bite.
He didnât look up, his fingers still moving across the keyboard. âNot much.â he replied evenly.
âWhat are you even working on?â she murmured, shifting slightly in her seat to get a better view.
âEmails,â he breathed, glancing at her briefly before turning back to the screen. âTour stuff.â
YN smiled faintly, her fingers returning to the guitar. âRock star by day, admin assistant by night?â
Harryâs lips twitched, but he didnât smile. âSomeoneâs gotta do it.â
She let out a low hum, her fingers drifting into a soft riff, the notes barely audible over the hum of the bus.
âIs that Mitchâs?â Harry asked after a moment, nodding toward the guitar.
âYeah.â She brushed her thumb lightly over the strings. âHe left it out earlier. Figured he wouldnât mind.â
He leaned back in his chair, pushing the laptop back slightly. âHe doesnât. Just doesnât usually let anyone play it.â
YN raised an eyebrow, glancing at him. âYou saying Iâm special?â
He huffed a quiet laugh, finally meeting her gaze. âHardly.â
She rolled her eyes, her lips curving into a small, reluctant smile. âYouâre such an ass.â
âLook in a mirror.â He smiled, echoing her words from days before, leaning forward to rest his elbows on the table.
For a while, the silence returned, but it felt slightly less brittle this time. YN continued strumming, the quiet notes blending with the steady rhythm of the bus.
âYouâre good.â Harry said eventually, his voice softer now.Â
YN looked at him, surprised by the unexpected compliment. âDonât sound so shocked.â
He let out a breathy laugh through his nose, leaning back again. âJust noticing, petal.â
Her chest tightened at the word, but she quickly shoved the feeling aside, focusing on the guitar.
âYouâre not so bad yourself.â She shrugged, her tone casual but laced with a challenge.
Harry tilted his head slightly, a faint smirk tugging at his lips. âThat a compliment?â
âDonât let it go to your head. Itâs big enough.â
He chuckled, the sound low and warm, and for a brief moment, the tension between them eased.
But then her fingers stilled on the strings, her gaze drifting back to the window. The reflection of the two of them in the glass felt surreal, like something out of a dream she wasnât sure she wanted to wake from.
âWhy were you up last night?â she asked suddenly, her voice quieter now, almost hesitant.
Harryâs smirk faded, his expression shifting into something more guarded. âDidnât feel like sleeping,â
âThatâs not what I meant,â she countered, turning to face him fully. âYou didnât have to let me in. Couldâve just shut the door and gone back to bed.â
Harry didnât respond right away. His gaze flickered to her hands, still resting lightly on the guitar, before meeting her eyes again. âDidnât seem like you wanted to be alone.â
YNâs throat tightened, and she looked away, her fingers brushing over the strings again. âI didnât ask for your help.â
âI know.â he said simply.
The quiet between them stretched, heavy and filled with things neither of them seemed willing to say.
YN strummed a few more notes, her movements slower now, more deliberate. She didnât look at him, but she could feel his eyes on her, steady and unrelenting.
âGo to bed, Harry,â she sighed eventually, her voice soft but firm.
âNot tired, YN.â There was no edge to the words.
She sighed, leaning her head back against the window as her fingers stilled on the guitar. âYou will be tomorrow.â
âGuess Iâll take my chances.â
She glanced at him, her chest tightening at the faint smile playing on his lips. She wanted to say something, wanted to break the strange tension hanging between them, but the words caught in her throat.
So she said nothing, letting the silence settle again as the bus rumbled on through the night.
September 30th, Boston
The air backstage at the Wang Theatre was thick with anticipation. YN sat in the corner of the green room, tuning her guitar for the third time in as many minutes. The hum of the crew preparing for the night buzzed through the walls, but her focus was pinned to the task in her hands. She needed something to do, anything to keep her from replaying the last few nights over and over in her head.
She tightened a string a little too hard, the sharp twang making her wince.
âYou alright over there?â Mitch asked, glancing up from where he was adjusting his pedalboard.
âFine,â she muttered, not looking up.
From the corner of her eye, she saw Harry glance her way, his expression unreadable. She forced herself to keep her focus on the guitar.
By the time the lights dimmed and the crowd erupted into cheers, YN was itching to get the show over with. The theatre was packed, the historic venue alive with energy, but it did nothing to ease the knot in her stomach.
The first few songs went smoothly enough, the band locking into their usual rhythm. Harry prowled the stage like he owned itâbecause he didâand the crowd hung on his every move.
But by the time they hit Woman, things began to unravel.
It started small. A glance. A smirk.
Harry turned toward her as he sang, his voice dipping into the lyric like he was saying it directly to her.
The crowd screamed, oblivious to the sharp edge in his gaze. YNâs fingers faltered on the strings for a fraction of a second before she caught herself.
Her eyes snapped to his, narrowing, but he didnât look away. Instead, his smirk deepened, daring her to react.
She refused to give him the satisfaction, pouring her frustration into her playing as the song built to its climax.
After the final note, the applause was deafening, the crowd on their feet as Harry grinned and wiped the sweat from his forehead. He turned to the audience, shouting his thanks into the mic, but YN didnât hear a word.
She slipped offstage the second the lights dimmed, her guitar slung over her shoulder as she headed toward the green room. Her chest was tight, her pulse racing, and she needed a minute to cool down before she said something sheâd regret.
But she didnât get far.
âYN!â
Harryâs voice cut through the noise backstage, and she stopped dead in her tracks, her hands tightening on her guitar strap.
She turned slowly, her jaw clenched as she met his gaze. âWhat?â
Harry jogged the last few steps to catch up with her, his sequined jacket glittering under the faint overhead lights. âWhat the hell was that?â
She blinked at him, caught off guard. âWhat are you talking about?â
âOn stage,â he said, gesturing vaguely behind him. âYou were off.â
âI wasnât off,â she shot back, her frustration bubbling to the surface.
âYou missed a note in Woman,â he said, his voice low but firm. âI heard it.â
YNâs jaw tightened, and she took a step closer, her voice dropping to match his. âMaybe if you stopped staring me down like a lunatic during every damn song, I wouldnât miss anything.â
Harryâs lips twitched, but there was no humor in his expression. âYou think thatâs why?â
âDonât start with me, Harry,â she warned, her hands gripping the strap of her guitar so tightly her knuckles turned white.
He stepped closer, his eyes narrowing. âYouâre the one starting something, YN. Youâve been looking for a fight all night.â
âOh, Iâm looking for a fight?â she snapped, her voice rising slightly. âThatâs rich coming from the guy who canât seem to decide whether he wants to piss me off orâŚâ
She stopped herself just in time, the words catching in her throat.
Harry tilted his head, his gaze flicking over her face as a faint smirk curled at the corner of his mouth. âOr what?â
YN glared at him, her chest heaving as she struggled to keep her composure. âForget it.â She spat, turning on her heel and heading for the green room.
Harry didnât follow, but she could feel his eyes on her back, heavy and unrelenting, as she disappeared down the hallway.
Back in the green room, she slumped into a chair, her guitar resting against the wall beside her. She closed her eyes, letting out a slow breath as the adrenaline from the stage finally began to fade.
She didnât know what pissed her off moreâHarryâs constant needling, or the fact that he was right.
Sheâd been off tonight.
But only because of him.
-
The tour bus rumbled down the highway, the lights of Boston fading far behind them as the road stretched dark and endless ahead. The show at the Wang was barely two hours in the past, but it already felt like a weight YN couldnât shake.
She sat in her bunk with the curtain pulled tightly shut, her knees tucked up to her chest and her notebook balanced precariously against them. Her pen hovered over the blank page, unmoving. She had opened it in an attempt to write somethingâanythingâto push the tension out of her head, but her mind refused to cooperate.
Instead, it replayed the night in an endless loop: Harryâs sharp words backstage, the way his smirk twisted into something darker, the challenge in his eyes daring her to finish what she hadnât meant to say.
Her chest tightened at the memory. Sheâd spent the rest of the night avoiding himâon stage, backstage, and now on the bus.
The thin curtain separating her from the rest of the bus didnât do much to block out the low hum of conversation from the main area. Harryâs voice rose and fell in rhythm with Sarahâs and Mitchâs, casual and unbothered. He laughed at something Mitch said, the sound low and easy, and it made YNâs stomach twist.
How is he so unaffected?
Hours later, the bus quieted as everyone began retreating to their bunks. The lights dimmed, and the gentle sway of the vehicle as it sped down the highway turned the space into a cradle of silence.
Everyone except YN and Harry seemed to have no trouble falling asleep.
She could feel his presence even though they werenât in the same part of the bus. He was out there, probably stretched out in one of the seats, scrolling on his phone or reading something. She hated that she knew his habits, hated that sheâd memorized the way he fidgeted when he was restless, or the sound of his quiet sigh when he gave up on trying to distract himself.
She hated, most of all, that she cared.
She finally slid out of her bunk, her bare feet silent against the soft carpet as she padded toward the kitchenette. The small fridge buzzed faintly as she pulled it open, grabbing a bottle of water and leaning against the counter.
She tried to focus on the cold press of the bottle against her palm, the faint vibration of the road beneath her feetâanything but the sound of movement behind her.
Harry stepped into the kitchenette without looking at her. He opened one of the cabinets, pulling out a box of tea bags and tossing one onto the counter before reaching for the electric kettle.
YN didnât say a word. She twisted the cap off her water and took a long sip, staring at the far wall as if it held the answer to whatever storm was brewing in her chest.
Harry didnât seem to mind the silence. He filled the kettle, set it on the counter, and leaned back against the opposite side of the small space, his arms crossing over his chest.
The room felt smaller now, the air heavier.
YN turned to leave, but his voice stopped her.
âYouâre quiet tonight.â
She froze, her back still to him.
âNot a bad thing,â he added casually. âJust different.â
Her grip on the water bottle tightened, her jaw clenching as she turned her head slightly. âMaybe I just donât feel like talking.â
Harry let out a soft hum, not quite a laugh. âHow long will that last?â
Her chest tightened as she walked away, slipping back into her bunk and yanking the curtain shut behind her. She sat in the dark, the sound of the kettle clicking off faint in the distance.
She hadnât seen his face, but she knew heâd been smirking. She could feel it in the way his words lingered, curling around her thoughts like smoke.
And despite herself, she hated that it still mattered.
October 1st, Washington, D.C.
DAR Hall was completely sold out, shoulder to shoulder, elbow into ribs.Â
Clips from the show in Boston, among other shows, started to surface online with whispers and reposts. It was only a matter of time, the crowd wasnât stupidâthe tension between the two was obvious, it was just a matter of deciphering if it was real or not.Â
The consensus seemed to be split down the middleâthey hated each otherâs guts, or they were fucking behind closed doors.Â
YN wasnât sure if Harry saw it, but she sure did. Her younger brother had texted her about it first, a series of spam texts at three in the morning asking for every detail.
She left him on read.Â
And now, here they stood in DC, before a sea of fans that seemed like they saw right through them, when YN herself didnât even know what there was to see.Â
Luckily, and unfortunately, there were only a few signs that seemed to be about YN and Harry, no one on stage acknowledged them.Â
It was a sort of silent agreement that YN would stick to her one guitar during the entirety of the tour. But, when Mitch went to switch out for the acoustic, Harry had stopped him.Â
He pulled his ear piece out slightly, whispering something to the guitarist before stalking towards YN on the wings of the stage. With the ear piece out, he could hear how insanely loud the crowd wasâhe couldnât help but send shocked smiles in their direction.Â
YN furrowed her eyebrows, her palm lying flat over the strings of the guitar as she pulled on her own ear piece. âWhatâs going on?âÂ
He stood near her, his breath peppermint and flat sprite. âSwitch out, youâre doing track seven.â
She narrowed her eyes, leaning her head in further.Â
Track seven on the setlist, meet me in the hallway. âWhat do you mean? You or Mitch play that.â
He smiled, bunny teeth and dimples. âNow you are.â He nodded toward her, shoving the ear piece back in and ambling back toward the mic that stood center stage.Â
She wasnât nervous, more caught off guard. She knew how to play it, it was just being asked to play it. She pulled the strap from over her shoulders, walking back toward the rest of the band and setting the instrument in its place.Â
Mitch would approach with an easy smile, settling the acoustic strap over her frame while Harry continued to talk to the crowd. He adjusted it to her body, looking over the frets to make sure they were tuned for the songâthey were. âYou know it?âÂ
She rested her fingers on the neck, nodding with a distant smile. âBack of my hand.â She breathed, earning a small nod from the other guitarist.Â
Her eyes squinted in the bright lights as she moved toward Harry, his smile still brightâas if nothing had been happening between them at all. He said something into the mic, nothing that resisted to YNâall that made sense was the second glance he sent her, the look to start.Â
The fans simmered down, but not silent. She let out a breath, eyes scanning over the crowd then back to Harry. Her pick moved over the chords seamlessly, as if she played it this way for years.Â
His hands gripped the mic stand as he echoed out the first lines, his rings glinting in the golden light. His eyebrows would furrow, his lips would widenâhe was just music.Â
He was an asshole to her, he knew it. He hated it, and she hated how he was completely under her skin, threaded into her veins.Â
As they approached the chorus, they looked toward each other, a fleeting sideways glance. He nodded his head down, shifting slightly to the side to make room for her.Â
His voice boomed over hers, deeper and more emotional, but they mixed in harmony. Her voice was soft underneath his, lighter, only a backing vocal for the chorus.
The crowd erupted, and some sense settled over YNâs shoulders, the lyrics eerily familiar to them, to their situation.Â
Her tummy twisted, yet she played the cords harder, falling into the melody, his words, the reverberation of the crowd.Â
Cause once you go without it, nothing else will do.Â
nothing else will do.
#harry styles#harry styles blurb#harry styles fanfiction#harry styles imagine#harry styles one shot#harry styles writing#harry styles x reader#harry edward styles#harry styles concept#harry styles au#harry styles angst#harry styles smut#hs1
138 notes
¡
View notes
Text
â ď¸nsfw/mdniâ ď¸
Just a Thursday NightâŚ
cw: suggestive (for now) youâre in a poly/closed triad with Toji and Shiu. They hate each others guts most of the time but they love the fuck out of you so..common interest i suppose lol
a/n: some fic below smau
Conversations like this were typical between the three of you. Shiu and Toji acting as if they werenât essentially best friends by default, seeing as how it was difficult for either of them to cultivate any kind of relationship in their line of work. Which was what made the relationship between the three of you work so well. How it all came about? That's probably a complex story for another day. Tonight was going to be simple. Your boyfriends were working late and usually didn't get home until even later. So you were never hard-pressed for time to prepare the evening for them.
It's close to midnight and the house you three shared was warm and cozy, the air colored with the scents of dinner cooking. Foil-wrapped potatoes baked in the oven while two skillets sizzled on the stove. One containing buttery garlic green beans and the other a thick ass porterhouse steak. On the counter, one steak rests at medium well doneness to Shiuâs liking, soon to be joined by Tojiâs medium rare.
You were busy searing each side of his steak when the door chimes alerted you that the front door had been opened.
Someone was finally home.
Shiu walks in the house first ,dressed in his suit and tie, blazer tossed over his shoulder. He always smells good as hell. Like expensive leather and mixture of his woodsy cologne and a freshly lit cigarette. Like a grown ass man that works hard just to provide his baby girl with whatever she wants.
He finds you in the kitchen at the stove preparing dinner and steps up behind you to make his presence known. His touch is gentle but firm, skimming over your hips and waist, pressing his front against the curve of your back. His lips find your ear, pressing a kiss to your temple before greeting you with a deep raspy âHey sweetheart.â. His voice is like the butter sizzling in the pan in front of you and you melt against him, turning your head to give him a proper kiss that he hums into contently with pliant lips.
âHi babyâ youâll sneak in between kisses that become less and less chaste. You're mindlessly pressing your ass into his crotch, making him grunt sexily and tighten his hold on your waist.
âDinners almost doneâ you add, sneaking a lick of his tongue with a smile.
âMmm..Smells goodâŚâ heâll mutter against your lips, to which youâll tell him to go get cleaned up so he could enjoy it. Heâll then hum in acknowledgment before pecking your lips a few more times, squeezing your hips and giving your booty a healthy slap before leaving you to it. Toji usually comes in right after him, shedding his coat and sporting dark jeans and a fitted tee. Looking every bit like that bad ass boy next door that your parents forbid you from dating. He greets you in his normal Toji fashion.
You yelp at the sting of the smack he plants on your other ass cheek, but it's soothed under Tojiâs hand as he rubs and kneads your plumpness.
âSup, Mama..â he growls into the curve of your neck, his buff ass arm coming around you and slotting under your chest for a possessive back hug. Tojiâs scent is an addictive amalgam of sandalwood, some sort of citrus, and his sweat from the day. Since he rode home in Shiuâs car, accents of smoke were woven into the fibers of gia clothing to mix with his natural fragrance, having its usual effect on you.
He nibbles and teases the skin of your neck until you're giggling and reaching up to tangle your fingers in his messy hair.
âToji!!â You attempt to squirm away from his lips. A feeble attempt of course. Heâs got you locked in place under his bear arm. After seemingly having his fill of nuzzling, Toji lifts his head and the hand resting against your ribs to turn your face towards him for a kiss that already has your head spinning. His tongue tastes of mint and Monster energy drink, which he more than likely chugged on the ride home.
It takes some effort to pull back from him, and he just keeps kissing you. The corner of your mouth. Your cheek. Your jawline. Before he can find his home in the crook of your neck again you have to elbow him in the abs gently to get his attention.
âYoure gonna make me burn the food, Toji. Quit it..â you giggle.
âJust take it off the heat then..I missed you today.â He whines,his lips moving sinuously against your skin. You gasp when his teeth graze your flesh. You were feeling dizzy with desire, your lashes fluttering at the way Toji bit into your neck and sucked hard, earning a barely muffled moan that snaps you back into reality.
âUh uhn TojâŚI gotta finish your steak. Unless you want me to overcook it..â You nudge him gently with your shoulder and he obeys with a grumpy sigh, pulling away reluctantly.
âSo? Then Iâll just have to eat you instead..â he grins, his cool-toned gaze blazing into you lustfully. Before you fall into his trap again, Shiu returns to the kitchen. Heâs still in his dress shirt, the top few buttons undone as he's yanking at his necktie. He opens the freezer before glancing over at the two of you tangled in a hot embrace at the stove, he sighs and rolls his eyes.
âThe least you can do is wash the murder off of your body before you rub yourself all over herâŚâ he scoffs, rummaging in the ice tray for two cubes to drop in the short-cut glass. Tojiâs upper lip curls into a snarl as he glares over your head at Shiu, who is now mindlessly opening his liquor cabinet.
âThe least you can do is mind your damn business..cock blocknâ ass..â Toji seethes. Shiu's tired gaze returns to Toji while he pours himself a drink.
"So it's cock blocking because Id rather you didn't get some dead man's DNA all over my girl?" he perks his brow, lifting the glass to his lips for a sip. Toji kisses his teeth. " You think I'd be all over MY girl like this without at least changing clothes? I'm not an idiot.."
At that opening, Shiu's brows lift as if he's about to disagree. He merely grunts in response instead, mumbling something snide under his breath as he posts up against the counter with his drink in hand. You didnât catch it but Toji must have since he was bristling with you still in his possessive embrace.
âYeah? Wanna repeat that to my face?â he drops the arm that caged you to his chest. His other arm loosens a bit as he steps around you as if he's about to approach Shiu, who of course regards Toji blankly before taking one more sip of his whiskey. When you noticed him turning to set the glass aside, your eyes widened.
"Yall don't start.." you whine, already scrambling to grasp Toji's shirt. It stretches from his torso a little when he tries to move further away from you to close the distance between him and Shiu with a sinister smirk on his face. Shiu smirks back, leaning back up from the counter to face him. There's a silent exchange of colorful language between the two men that you weren't going to let escalate. It was late and you just wanted a peaceful night in with your men. No drama. No bickering.
"OH MY GOD! ALL THIS TESTOSTERONE IN MY KITCHEN!â you blurt out, earning both of their attention. Pointing the spatula you now had in your hand, you aimed it towards Shiu with a glare. He opens his mouth but you shush him.
âAht! Make that the last drink you get before you eat your dinner, ok? And you..â you pause to crane your neck back enough to look at Toji.
âWhile I do love the smell of you, if you killed someone tonight I'd prefer it if you cleaned up. Cool?â
Toji glances down at himself with the same type of furrowed brow that Shiu was now sporting when he looked into his glass. "Now I don't wanna hear anymore bitching from either one of you tonight, dammit. Its late and Iâm cramping. Dinner will be ready in about 10 minutes, ok? So both of you get out of my kitchen so I can finish cooking please.â
You give them both a look, ensuring that they understand their assignments, spatula waving between them. There is a mixture of surprise and amusement in their expressions, finding your bossiness endearing considering you were the smallest person in the room. The men exchange a seething look of understanding, Shiu being the first to scoff and break eye contact before looking to you.
"Sure thing baby," he remarks warmly, picking up his glass and tossing back what was left in it before putting it back on the counter. He then approaches you, giving Toji a snarky downward scan in passing before leaning in to peck your lips. Toji rolls his eyes and huffs loudly during the affectionate exchange, knowing Shiu was just trying to push his buttons in the little ways he could without you knowing.
When he pulls away, you lick the remnants of whiskey he left on your lips with a smirk.
" Mmmhmm. Out." you wrinkle your nose at him, pushing him away playfully as he steps between you and Toji to exit the kitchen.
Leaving you with your broodiest boyfriend.
Toji was biting the inside of his cheek and watching Shiu leave with narrowed eyes, looking like he was plotting something devious when you poked him in the pec. His glare drops to you, softening a little on the way your siren eyes were drawing him in. With a lift of your brow, Toji relents.
"What?" he frowns and you smile at him sweetly, reaching up to run your thumb over the scarred corner of his mouth before speaking.
"You too, big boy. Go wash ya ass. And don't kill Shiu on your way back there please." you nod your head in the kitchen doorway's direction. At that, Toji grunts humorously as he kisses your thumb, then your forehead.
"Only 'cuz you said please.." he grumbles before trudging out of the kitchen somewhat begrudgingly.
You maintained that stone-cold expression while you admired that muscular ass back on his way out, waiting until you were alone to allow that facade to break immediately in favor of you being utterly hot and bothered.
It wasn't always like this but you swore one day things would come to blows between those two if you weren't always there to intervene. There was no reason for them to still be this competitive when it came to you. There was a clear understanding between you three that you were theirs equally and vice verse. But you had to admit that it was annoyingly sexy to see them still fussing over you though. Or maybe it was just because you were ovulating.
Either way, you were sure to be in for another long night with these twoâŚ
#toji#shiu#jujutsu kaisen toji#toji x reader#shiu x reader#jjk#anime#toji fushiguro#jjk toji#toji fanfic#toji zenin#jjk fanfic#jjktoji#jujutsu toji#jjk shiu#shiutoji#shiu kong#shiu x you#shiu smau#toji smau
134 notes
¡
View notes
Text
Chicken Shop Date | Part 10
By @imagine-that-100âââ and @alovesreadingâââ
Description: Matty Healy x Reader (Female) | You and your best friend Amelia came up with a very simple idea of taking celebrities on awkward chicken shop dates, and somehow, itâs managed to become both of your jobs. In the past, youâve found sitting across from some of the biggest stars on the planet and eating chicken nuggets easy. But then Amelia manages to score you a date with the man who youâve been obsessed with since you were nineteen; Matty Healy.
Word Count: 43.3k
A/N: Well hello everyone! We are back... kind of. It's been over a year (a year and eight days to be exact) since the last chapter we posted of this story, but most importantly, today marks exactly two years since we first posted this fic and we wanted to celebrate by posting the very last chapter. This is a bittersweet moment because we did start this one thinking it would be two parts long, at most, yet here we are. We are so baffled by how big this story became, but so incredibly grateful for your support, love, and your endless patience with us. N and I are sending yous all the love. We're gonna let you enjoy every bit of this chapter, and well, I guess we'll see you on the epilogue!
| Part 1 | Part 2 | Part 3 | Part 4 | Part 5 | Part 6 | Part 7 |Â Part 8 | Part 9 |
| Nâs Masterlist | Aâs Masterlist |
~*~*~*~ 25th February 2023 ~*~*~*~
"So sorry we're late. We're finally here." You unlock the door to your Mum and Dad's house with Matty in tow.
The only thing that's gone right on your trip here is that you both made it into the car and you both had the bright idea of getting ready for your family party before you set off. Other than that, it's been a bit of a mess.
First, after 5 minutes of driving away from Matty's house, you both forgot your bags which you packed for the next few days of your stay at your parents so you had to go back to grab them. Then you kept on getting every red light you came across, followed by a standstill on the motorway which was 45 minutes of you and Matty singing 2000s bangers interrupted by each of you occasionally complaining about how long you'd been waiting in traffic.
Needless to say, parking up at your parents house was just that bit of comfort you needed after a shit journey. Though by the slight bit of worry you can detect on Matty's face you feel that he may not be quite as comforted as this is the first time he's meeting your parents.
He's only briefly caught your Mum on FaceTime before now and it was just a quick conversation that you cut short because your Mum was about to embarrass you. But he's yet to meet your dad and you know he's nervous despite him having no reason to be.
"You're fine, it's better if we're fashionably late anyway. Come in, come in." You Mum shouts as she rushes to the door and practically all but shoves you out of the way after giving you possibly the quickest hug and peck to the cheek. Clearly, her eyes are set on a certain someone else.Â
Your boyfriend manages to get his greeting in there first once you step to the side to watch the encounter. Matty smiles brightly, putting your bags down in the hall as he says, "Hey, so so nice to finally meet you."
"Matty," Your Mum's grin is huge as she welcomes him with open arms, "So lovely to meet you properly."
Being the teddy bear that he is, Matty isn't phased by the hug in the slightest and he happily returns it, giving your Mum a tight squeeze as if relishing in the hug of another mother figure. It seems your Mum's grin is infectious because Matty's is now just as big as he tells her, "So lovely to meet you in person. FaceTime isn't the same. You're even more gorgeous in real life."
Your Mum starts laughing as they release each other from the embrace. "Flattery gets you everywhere in this house, you're going to fit right in." She pulls your boyfriend inside, like he isn't being dragged when she says, "Please come in."
Matty smiles at you on his way in, clearly having calmed down a little after realising you weren't lying when you said that your Mum was lovely. You adore him for being nervous though, God knows if you weren't badly jet lagged and emotional the day you met Denise, you would have been just as, if not more worried than when you met Tim.
Your Mum leads Matty straight into the kitchen leaving you to put both your bags at the bottom of the stairs out of the way, and you head to your lounge to see your Dad with a beer already in hand and he's on his feet offering you a hug immediately. There's a gin on the side so it's great to see that they have had pre-drinks while they've been waiting for you to arrive and not sat hating you for being late.
After pleasantries are exchanged and you've given him a hug, he asks you. "Was the trip over okay?"
"Yeah it was good despite the traffic, thank you Dad." You smile, picking up your Mum's gin and smelling it quickly before you have a sip.
Ooooo Parmaviolet gin. Stunning! Putting the glass back down quickly, you nod towards the door and ask your father, "Come meet Matty?"
Your Dad looks entirely too smug as he asks, "Do I pretend like I haven't seen his face on your bedroom wall since you were a teenager?"Â
God that's a whole different can of worms you'll have to sort out when you get home later. Take the posters down, number 1 on the priority list. "No, he knows I was a fan. But please don't embarrass me." You all but beg, even showing him some puppy dog eyes as you reiterate, "Please."
"I make no promises." Your Dad smiles teasingly and slight dread seeps into your system.
Even though you're slightly more than half certain he's just trying to wind you up, you say, "Dad." sternly.
Instead of easing your worries, your father just pulls you into another hug, and he kisses the top of your head before saying softly, "Good to have you home."
You're about to tell him you're happy to be back, but before you can your Mum comes into the lounge with your boyfriend in tow. Immediately a smile finds its way to your lips, just because you can see his gorgeous face again but also because he's clearly made friends with your Mum already as he's got one of her precious gin glasses in hand which means he's already won her over. You're lucky if you even get one of those crystal gin glasses.
Your boyfriend's grin only gets bigger when he properly greets your Dad, offering him a handshake. As your father takes his hand, he asks knowingly, "Did she make you drive Matty?"
"No, I offered," Matty chuckles a little before he explains, "And I've not insured her on my car yet... But when I do that, I'll make sure she drives next time."
Matty glances at you all amused because you've told him in the past how you're not too confident about driving around central London which is why you don't have a car at your flat. The little bitch just likes teasing you about it, and from this alone you know him and your Dad will get on just fine because your Dad's made the same joke in the past.
"Good man." Your father chuckles, "Nice to meet you."
After introductions are out of the way and you're all settled with drinks in hand, Matty seems to relax right in and you're really pleased because you knew he was nervous to meet your parents even though you told him there was no need to be. Regardless, you're so happy he fits in seamlessly, and is doing God's work by entertaining all of your Mum's silly questions.
But it's when there's a slight lull in conversation that your father takes the opportunity to ask a question you wish never left his lips. Your Dad looks all proud of himself after he takes a sip of beer and asks, "Has my daughter ever told you about the time that she screamed and started crying when you announced you were releasing your second album?"
"Oh my god, STOP!" You yell before hiding yourself in your hands all the while Matty's giggle fills the room.
"Ha, no she hasn't but I'd love to hear all stories like that." You hear your boyfriend say and you're already shaking your head.
"No, you don't." You say sternly, still hiding your now burning face. Your Dad just laughs and ignores you as he tells Matty, "Oh there's hundreds, I'll tell you when she's not here to tell me off."
The whine of pain that leaves your lips has the room laughing, and Matty rubs your back for a second to silently tell you not to be embarrassed. If anything he's grateful for your obsession with his music because it led to him being here with you right now and he wouldn't change that for the world. No matter how obsessed you may be.
You take a second to compose yourself before you uncover your hot face and look directly at the culprit. "Dad," You shoot him a pointed look that both him and your Mum start chuckling at, "Thought I just said don't embarrass me."
"Sorry sweetheart, but I can't promise anything when you bring the man home who we've been shown pictures of since you were a teenager." Your Dad drops you in it again and all you can do is look to the ground and sigh.
"It's going to be a very long night." You mumble before you take a long sip of your gin. And something tells you that you're not going to be wrong.
~*~*~*~
Matty is stiff in his seat next to you in the taxi as you make your way to the venue where your family gathering is. As nerve wracking as it was to meet your parents, he recognises that it's gone well, but the prospect of now going to a place where he's not only going to meet but interact with your entire family for hours, has him shitting bricks.
His breathing becomes shallow as he bounces his knee and fiddles with his fingers, and he doesn't even notice he's doing all that since he's lost staring space. His thoughts are as all over the place as his fidgeting, trying to remember names you've thrown around or little details about your aunties and uncles that he could use to make a good impression.
You're thankful you don't fail to notice his clear signs of restlessness showing through. You almost coo aloud because you find it so adorable that he's this nervous about meeting your family. Maybe you should mention they already adore him because you have never kept your love for the band from them, so basically everyone already knows who he is.
If anyone should be scared of things potentially going against them, it's you who should be worried. God knows all the shit your family could say to him to embarrass you. Your parents have already tried their hand, but you know there's so much more that everyone else could say.
Before you can even begin to make a list of all the possibilities, your hand rests over his restlessly bouncing knee. You gently rub his thigh as you send a smile his way, quietly telling him, "You're going to be fine."
His leg stops moving and though his hands freeze over his lap, his gaze falls on you and you can just read the worry on his face. Bringing a hand up to cup his face, you rub his cheek softly and assure him, "They'll love you."
Just as much as I do, you want to add but you don't think it's the best time to say it. You just hope he can read it in your eyes, because your chest hurts with the amount of love you have for him and it shines on your face when you look at him.
He nods faintly and leans in to steal a quick kiss. "I trust you," he mumbles against your lips before pressing a kiss to your cheek and finally settling in his seat. His fingers intertwined with yours and he squeezes your hand before resting it over his thigh. Looking down at your joined hands makes you sigh in content, and you end up resting your head on his shoulder with the stupidest smile on his face.
Matty lets your warmth calm him down and soon he forgets where you're going for all he can think of is how nice you smell and how soft your skin feels under his calloused fingers, how cute you look in this dress and how he could go an eternity with you pressed against his side like this.
When the car stops, you pick your head up and, just like your parents, thank the driver before exiting the taxi. You turn to look at Matty and see his nerves washing over him again, but you walk up to him and brush his curls back before kissing him softly and quickly in reassurance.
Though it really doesn't help when your dad says, "Come on, let's throw you into the belly of the beast Matty."
Matty chuckles quietly, and though he puts on a cool, unbothered expression, the way he squeezes your hand gives him away. He clears his throat before saying, "You surely can't be all that bad."
Your dad snorts menacingly, knowing exactly what's to be expected on the other side of the door, "You'll be eating your words soon."
If you were close enough to slap your Dad's arm, you would have done but he's already linked your Mum's arm and heads inside. The venue isn't the biggest, but it's on the nice side of town and it's by no means a shithole, so it's perfect for your Auntie's birthday bash.
It's by pure luck that the second you go inside, the first to greet you and your family is your Uncle Darren. He smiles brightly at you when he sees you and Matty holding hands and waiting for him to finish hugging your mum and dad.
He makes a show of letting his gaze fall to your joint hands and then back up to your face so he can give you a wink. You can feel your cheeks heating up at the lack of subtlety from your uncle, and his smirk is huge when he notices you getting flustered at his silent taunting.
His gaze moves to your boyfriend then. Extending his hand out towards Matty, your uncle introduces himself, "You must be Matty. I'm Darren, nice to meet you."
Matty hears you snort beside him but doesn't question it for he shakes your uncle's hand and offers him a sweet smile, "Lovely to meet you. You're Y/N's uncle right?"
"Yes, I'm her favourite," your uncle replies smugly. He looks at you and sees the way you roll your eyes, it has him snorting out a laugh before asking you this time, "How was the drive?"
You give your uncle a little smile seeing the actual care laced around his words, "Yeah it was good, thank you. After the traffic it was good to see home again."
"Ah yes, you went home first..." your uncle says and lets his words drift away into the air, and you can almost see how a lightbulb goes off in his head when he smirks again and looks at Matty to point out, "You got the meeting the parents out of the way first. Good idea. But it's me you have to impress."
You almost laugh when you think you see Matty visibly gulp. But you take pity on him, like he's done with you when meeting his family. Plus, you know your uncle is playing with him. He has known who Matty is for far too long thanks to you being an avid fan of the band, and he's actually hiding how much he enjoys their tunes.
"He's already impressed you with his music, don't act all tough now." You turn to a still nervous Matty and try to ease his worries by saying, "He's a big fan."
That's when it clicks for Matty and he turns back to look at your uncle with a knowing smile growing on his face, "Aren't you uncle Dazza?"
Your uncle gives up his attempts to tease you any further and to act too cool then, he just nods and says, "I quite like Tonight I Wish I Was Your Boy. I love the sample from The Temptations."
You swear you can feel the way Matty relaxes when sensing a bit of familiarity now, and you smile so big when he says, "Thank you. They were twats about that one though. They wanted like ninety seven percent from us to use that."
Your uncle Dazza's eyes widen at the quick fact and you almost laugh at the same time as he says, "Really?"
Matty nods and sighs as if the memory alone gets him annoyed, but then shrugs as he tells, "Yeah we just said fuck it though because it was too good to not to make."
"Well I'm glad you did. Great song," your uncle concludes and it's your loud cackle that makes a bright smile break on his face before he shoves you slightly and tells you to, "Shush." Before you can even start gloating about how you've managed to turn everyone into at least a casual fan of the band, your uncle Dazza sends you over to where your auntie is.Â
Your mum and dad have gone ahead and are already talking to her when you get pushed away by your uncle, so you sneak behind her taking Matty right with you and yell, "Happy birthday!" over her shoulder. She lets out a loud gasp when hearing your voice, but a little squeak follows when she sees who's right beside you and holding your hand.
"Oh my god! Is he here to serenade me?" Your Auntie says with so much excitement you think your heart might explode. Matty blushes next to you when you chuckle lightly and your Auntie fans herself as she makes a show of her assumption. "On my birthday, Y/N you shouldn't have."
What you don't expect her to do though, is turn to Matty and rest her hand on his forearm as she says, "My favourite is Antichrist, just so you know."Â
You have to swallow the urge to cackle when Matty just frowns deeply at the suggestion. But your auntie still winks at you, knowingly. You can only smile at her, so damn proud that she's done this the second she's met your boyfriend. You have certainly taught her well.
"How'd you..." Matty looks confused for a second before he shakes his head slightly, a smile slowly forming on his lips before he asks, "Surely that's a bit too depressing for a big day like today?"
The silence that follows is loud for a second or two, until your Auntie pouts and looks at you to say, "I tried for you babe."
You halfheartedly sigh in response, "Thanks for trying Auntie Shazza. Stubborn man he is."
Matty can't fight the smile that spreads on his face, and he asks your Auntie in disbelief, "Did she tell you to ask for that?"
Bless your Auntie though, she shrugs and puts on a proud face as she says, "No, I just know things."
Before Matty can say anything else, someone calls out for her and she excuses herself. She gives your boyfriend a smile and you a wink before leaving. You just know that he's about to say something by the way he smirks at you, with that glint in his eye that makes your head run wild but before he can open his mouth, someone interrupts.
"Y/N!" You hear being shouted from across the room and when both you and Matty turn to follow the voice, you all but run at your favourite cousin.
Matty can't help but like your cousin already, just from the smile he simply brought to your face. Matty knows by your reaction alone that it must be Olly, your 'absolute legend of a cousin'. You've been telling Matty about him since you asked if he was free to join you at this party and your boyfriend has been keen to meet him.
"Thank fuck you're finally here." Olly says as he gives you a tight hug which you return. But when he releases you, he pulls back and looks at you accusingly, "You've left me for over an hour being exposed to Satan incarnate."
Matty's confused by this as he watches on expectantly, but by the way the joy of seeing your favourite cousin falls from your face, he knows that whoever you're talking about is not someone you're a fan of. And that's made extremely clear with your reaction that has Matty holding in a laugh.
"She's here?" Your scoff, and when Olly nods entirely unimpressed by the truth, you say with complete conviction, "Great... Was hoping she'd have rode off on her broomstick by now."
Matty thought that his eyes couldn't get any wider hearing that, but then he's sure his eyes budge from his head when Olly tilts his head to the side and so casually says, "Hit by a bus would be better." You snort in laughter at that, and when you turn to Matty so you can introduce him to your favourite cousin you notice just how confused he is. But before you can begin to explain, your boyfriend gets there first.
"Is she Regina George or something?" Matty questions as he looks between the two of you, he has to know, "Why do yous hate her?"
"Oh, you'll find out." You cousin half laughs before stepping towards your boyfriend and introducing himself, "'M Olly, it's nice to meet you mate."
"Matty, nice to meet you," He smiles and shakes your cousin's outstretched hand, "I've heard lots about you."
"Ditto," Olly smirks, "Although, it's usually more about your music than yourself."
The look of utter betrayal on your face is priceless and Matty can't help but laugh. He gives you an amused look but asks with raised eyebrows, "Do you ever stop talking about me?"
You do well holding in your scoff, but it's so worth it when you twist your cousin's words to tease your boyfriend. You give him a knowing look when you say, "Usually to talk about more important matters like Ross or George."
"Nice to know Hann didn't make the cut." Your boyfriend folds his arms almost proudly, taking the small victory where he can. But of course, you're there to shoot him down again.
You narrow your eyes as you backchat, "Only because he's married with a child." Matty gives you a look then that screams carry on and you'll regret it and because you know his punishments will be oh so sweet, all you can do is give him bring it on eyes.
"Careful," Olly brings the both of you out of your little staring match, reminding you of all the other eyes that could be on you, "Lovers quarrel at a family party and you will be the talk of the town for very different reasons than you already are in the family WhatsApp."
You hum, "There's a reason I don't check that chat."
"Well, you'd be pleased to know that Mother Gothel isn't here," Your cousin smiles, but the character name has Matty feeling thankful for whoever hasn't shown up. However, Olly goes on to say, "But Paige only decided to come once she heard that you were coming and bringing Matty."
"Of course." You let out a berated sigh, and Matty finally gets the picture when you say, "But at least her Mum's not here."
Whilst your boyfriend's keen to get the gossip, he can't help but tease you a little, "Wow, I never knew you could be so nasty." The look that you send him is entirely one of amusement but clearly you and your cousin feel very passionately about these two people, because your cousin backs you up completely.
"Believe me, she deserves it." Olly begins to explain everything to your boyfriend. "She thinks she's the big 'I am'Â because she went to fashion school, but since Chicken Shop Date blew up for Y/N, Paige has been bitter about her getting to go on red carpets and meeting celebs and stuff."
Matty's eyes go wide and when he looks at you for confirmation, you nod a little and then tell him most of the details. You explain how Paige is your Mum's eldest sister's daughter, and Olly is your Mum's little sister's son, and the three of you cousins were all born one year after the other (Paige being the oldest and you the youngest) and how at family get togethers it was always the three of you forced to interact as you grew up.
For as long as you can remember Paige has always been a cow and a snake, and she always picked on you as a kid just because she could and she got away with it most of the time because she was older. Her Mum is just a pretentious cow who in her eyes can see Paige do no wrong and thankfully your awful auntie's sisters dislike her, not just you and Olly. You'll forever be grateful that your Mum and Auntie Sharon had a massive row with their sister one year which meant you saw less and less of that small evil side of your family. But that didn't stop their poisonous comments from getting to you over the last few years.
As you're about to explain all the shit she initially said about Chicken Shop Date and the things you've heard her say about you and Amelia, it seems the bitch has a second sense for her name being uttered. Because speak of the devil and he shall appear, this time in a mini skirt and stilettos.
"Y/N." Paige makes her debut, stalking over to the three of you in her heels which still leaves her shorter than you in your combat boots. "You finally made the effort to show up, how gracious of you."
Taking a second not to immediately bite back at her attempts to rile you, your reply is short and sweet, "Fashionably late, what can we say?"
Olly holds in the chuckle he wants to let out hearing that, and at the way the three of you clock Paige's eyes looking you up and down as if to check for herself. And you can't hold your smirk seeing the light die in her eyes as she realises you're dressed in a Miu Miu forest green knitted dress. And it costs a fuck ton of money, which she's well aware of and can't say shit about.
When her eyes meet yours again, just to subtly fuck with her that bit more, you correct yourself, "You could also call it saving the best till last."
Olly snorts seeing your smirk and immediately throws his hand up to cover his mouth. It takes Matty a lot to not just laugh straight away, but he can't help the smile that's on his face. But seeing Matty's amusement immediately attracts your devil cousin's attention, and she grins then looking directly at your boyfriend. As she does, she also answers your statement nodding to herself, "Oh yes, you really have."
And of course she doesn't mean you. Not with the way she's looking like she wants to eat your boyfriend alive. Looking at Matty up and down in a more suggestive way than you've ever even seen fans do at his gigs, your bitch of a cousin hums to herself, but purposefully loud enough for you to hear over the venue's music, "Oooo, even better in real life."
It takes everything in you not to react. Instead you just smile like you agree, and you take every pleasure in seeing that she's annoyed by not upsetting you. Truly, it baffles you how she's 30 years old and still acts like she's a teenager with a petty feud.
She stretches out her hand as if she wants him to kiss the back of it, "Hi, I'm Paige"
Matty, entirely unimpressed with her behaviour, puts on a smile just to be polite. But he's also mighty confused why she's offered her hand like that but shakes her hand instead, "Hey, y'alright?" And he's never let go of someone's hand faster.
Paige keeps eye fucking your boyfriend and smirks as she glances at you, "I remember what you used to say about him..." immediately Matty turns to look at you with a smirk already lighting up his face, and he thinks she's about to spill some gossip on you, but she just attempts to flirt again, "I can say I agree now, especially about these curls."
Your boyfriend frowns a little at that but he doesn't take his eyes from you, meaning he sees the way your jaw falls slightly at the mere audacity of your family member. He catches the way your jaw clenches ever so slightly before you casually bite back, "Well I don't have to say them anymore, I can just do them."
Paige just chuckles in response and Matty can feel her gaze linger on him as she says, "Good for you." and only because he thinks she's about to catch onto the fact she's not wanted in this conversation anymore, he looks back at her for a second.
But that leads Satan incarnate to tell Matty, "You know it's lucky she got 'famous' too because I fear you would still be her entire personality still now if not."
"Then it's lucky she's entirely my personality now so we balance each other out, don't we baby?" Matty smirks at you, wrapping a possessive arm around your waist and pulling you into him. His eyes barely even leave yours, as if he's totally besotted with you and there's not a party going on around you. And god, you feel the exact same. You could get lost just looking at him again right now, counting all of his cute little freckles, picking out which of his curls is your favourite one today, loving how it's falling.
There's endless things that have you never wanting your eyes to stray from the man you love, but seeing how he's looking at you and feeling how he's holding you like he never wants to take moments together for granted and holding you tightly is something you'll forever cherish. You're itching to tell him you love him, and seeing just how big your smile is, the words almost fall from Mattys lips.
But your cousin ruins the moment. "Oh, you two are already vile." Olly fakes a gag before he moves behind the both of you and forces you apart by hanging an arm over each of your shoulders and pushes you both away from Paige. "Let's do some shots and start the night off with a bang."
"I like your thinking." Matty chuckles and happily lets him be led the way to the bar.
Thankfully Paige doesn't follow you and the three of you manage two shots of tequila each at the bar before you get your drinks. Unsurprisingly, Olly gets whisked away by your Auntie Sharon, wanting to show her son off to her friends and your other family members so you and Matty are left to your own devices for a few minutes.
Or that is until the both of you sit down at an empty table and settle with your drinks. You both let your surroundings sink in, although loud music and a lot of people in a room isn't anything new to either of you now.
Despite you thinking the DJ has opted to play Pitbull a bit earlier in the night than needed considering no one is up dancing yet, the party is in full swing. A lot of your family is here and people you recognise from your Uncle's family who you've met at these parties previously, and you're really happy for your Auntie Sharon's sake that she's had a good turn out and everyone looks like they're enjoying themselves.
A few of your Auntie's friends spot you and they come over for you to introduce them to Matty. You love them nearly but they are a rather nosy bunch - wanting every detail of how you two got together which you give them the PG version of events. Matty came on Chicken Shop Date, there was a spark there despite the filming so another date was arranged, and after your date on New Years you've been together ever since. Absolutely no need for them to know he stayed at your flat twice before your second date and he fucked you dumb after it.
Despite the amount of familiar faces coming up to you and asking about the new man in your life, you can't bring yourself to hate it even if some of them were a bit too invasive. And that's because you catch that glint lighting up Matty's eyes each and every time you call him your boyfriend. It has you wanting everyone to come over so you can show him off to everyone.
Not to mention the way seeing that look in his eyes makes your heart skip a beat. It's getting difficult to keep your mouth shut about how much he means to you now. But you're certainly not going to tell him you love him for the first time at your family party.
You're thinking about just how much you love the man beside you talking to your Aunt's friend when you hear a thunder of little feet coming your way and just as you're about to turn around in your seat, you hear a sweet little voice that you've been missing.
"Auntie Y/N!"
You all but jump from your seat when seeing your favourite little cousin running towards you, "Sammy!" Your arms extend to have him run into them, and when he crashes into you, you let out a groan as you try to pick him off the ground like you always have, "Oh I've missed you cutie!"
You rest the little one on your hip and notice just how much he's grown because you can place a dozen kisses on the 6 year olds head with complete ease now. And once you get your giggle after you pepper him with kisses, you give him a tight squeeze as you say, "But you've grown so much, I can barely pick you up now!"
"I've missed you too!" Little Sam says in your ear, and your heart melts because that's just what you wanted to hear. You give him another big squeeze that he pretends he can't breathe from which makes you laugh as you put him back on the ground.
There's a proud smile on Sam's face and puffs his chest out to say, "I'm quite big now, right?" Your grin gets impossibly big and you nod before accentuating, "Huge!"
It's Matty's little enamoured giggle behind you that catches little Sam's attention, and when he realises where he has seen that face before, the kid is pointing at your boyfriend and outing you in the worst possible way.Â
Little Sam gasps, entirely jaw dropped, looking from you to Matty when he all but shouts, "You have pictures of him in your bedroom!" Your jaw falls automatically and Matty's cackle is loud in response. Your mouth moves as you try to say anything back to that but you can't gather any words in your mind in the time it takes Matty to get up and crouch in front of Sam and ask, "Oh does she?"
The little traitor nods enthusiastically, now grinning and continues to expose you, "Yeah and she also has a really big picture of yâ" Quickly, you're behind your little cousin covering his mouth with your hand, you manage to interrupt his attempt at ruining your reputation. You crouch down a little to tell Sam, "You've said enough. Where's you Mum and Dad?"
"No, no," Matty now standing just in front of the both of you with a grin on his lips, "Let the kid speak."
You say, your cheeks feeling very hot, "Nope." and you quickly wrap your arms around little Sam and heave him into the air. Secured against you, you turn around and carry him back over to his Mum and Dad leaving Matty cackling behind you.
Unfortunately, the end of your embarrassment never comes because once you've made it back to Matty after handing Sam over to his parents who quickly distracted him, more of your cousins come over to see you. Only after you explain to Matty how the kids are your second cousins do the rest of the little monsters descend.
After exchanging pleasantries with their parents (your Mum and Aunt's' cousins), their little boy Zack - who Matty would guess is about 12 - is left with you for a few minutes, and after you introduce him to Matty, explaining how he's your new boyfriend, Zack looks at you quizzically. The little dirty blond asks you, as he stands between yours and Matty's chair, "Isn't he-" nodding at Matty, "The one in the videos you used to play when you would babysit me?"
You don't think you've ever disliked your cousins until these embarrassing moments. Being entirely stuck for words as Matty laughs at the information your cousin just divulged, it's your boyfriend who raises his eyebrows and says, "Wow, all these rumours are really not helping the cause of you not being obsessed with me."
Immediately you sink back into your seat and huff, "Don't flatter yourself."
"Oh," Matty giggles, "But it's the talk of the town, baby." You're about to lean across and punch his arm, but the child beside you pipes back up, confirming his own suspicions when he asks you, "Is it him?" But when you hesitate in answering, he just turns to your boyfriend, "You sing Chocolate, right?"
"That's me." Matty's grin has turned into a shit eating one, and he only glances at you before giving Zack all his attention and offers him a high five and a, "Nice to meet you, bud."
Immediately, like any child before their teens, he returns your boyfriends high five excitedly and it seems that he loves Matty from that gesture alone. Probably even more so after Zack outs you again. "By the way," Your little cousin continues telling Matty, "She told me she'd take me to one of your concerts when I'd be old enough and it still hasn't happened."
Noting Zack's dramatic emphasis on the word 'still', Matty is just as dramatic when he looks at you, shaking his head like he's wildly disappointed in you, "Now that's just rude, Y/N."
"Okay, listen," You hold your hand up and gesture to your little cousin, "You're barely even ten."
Zack looks hurt when he half shouts, "I'm eleven!" And your little bitch of a boyfriend nods at Zack saying, "That sounds old enough to me."
"See!" The little dirty blond smiles like your boyfriend just gave him a piece of cake, "I am old enough."
"Don't worry, you'll be going to the next one mate. I'll put you on the guestlist." Matty promises him, with the condition of, "Just don't start swearing when you hear me swear, okay? And then you can come to more than just one show, okay?" Zack says a big thank you and quickly hugs your boyfriend before sticking his tongue out at you playfully, making you laugh, and he runs back to his parents to tell them the good news.
You shake your head but can't take the smile off your face when you sigh, "You're just spoiling them now."
"It's only a concert." Matty shrugs like it's no big deal. "Can't believe you didn't treat them." You scoff, "Where you pretend to fucking toss yourself off, excuse me for not taking them to this tour when I knew what it'd be like."
"I'll change it up for them next time, for Still At Their Very Best." Matty promises with a smile, "I've got ideas already."
"God, I absolutely dread to think." You mumble, wondering what in the hell you're eventually going to have to subject your family too.
Matty smirks at your fake distaste, but he can't fight the need to kiss that pout off your face. He reaches down to the metal of your seat and pulls your chair right beside his, and as soon as you're close enough he cups your cheek and gives you a gentle kiss. You all but melt at his touch, and Matty is so in awe at the way you react to him, loving how it's like fate brought you together as you so seamlessly fit. But he can't help but tease his beautiful girlfriend, "You act like you won't come to every show with me."
You hum in amusement as he taps the tip of your nose, but you play right back. He needs a taste of his own medicine with how big his head is right now. "Not if Arctic Monkeys are touring," You can't take the smile from your lips as you peck his pillowy lips once more, "I'm going round with Flo. We've already arranged it."
Matty sighs, closing his eyes for a second as he nods, "Of course you have."
You find yourself unable to stop yourself from giggling at his reaction because bringing the Monkeys up was always a fun way to step on his ego. Despite the bruise you've just left, your boyfriend starts chuckling too as the party sweeps you back up.
The DJ announces that the buffet is served and you patiently watch the hungry wolves descend before you get up yourselves. As you're both eyeing up what food you fancy, another of your little cousins come over. Matty notices straight away that the little girl, maybe about 9 years old, recognises him. The shock on the little blonde's face makes it evident, but more so that when she stands right beside the both of you, she's jaw dropped as she looks at him and says, "Oh my god! You're the guy who says 'One, Two, fucking jump'!"
The gasp that leaves your lips is instant and loud, and Matty has to hold in his laugh as you lean down and tell her, "I've told you that you're not allowed to say that unless the song is on."
Immediately the little girl, who Matty thinks from the resemblance alone must be Zack's little sister, runs off giggling and you stand back up properly taking a deep breath. It takes everything in your boyfriend not to laugh at you again being outed by your family, but he doesn't let you get away with it. When you look back at him, he asks curiously, "Why have you been teaching kids that?"
"I was babysitting and they were asking what concerts I'd been to so we put on live at the O2 and of course they picked up on that bit." You sigh, shaking your head, but then you poke your boyfriend in the chest a few times as you say, "So if we think about it, it's your fault really."
It was Matty's turn to gasp and shake his head then, and after debating it for a few minutes the both of you ended up agreeing to disagree. The food was glorious and Olly came over to eat with you both taking a respite from being his Mums show pony for a bit, and being unable to hold back all of you went back up to get second helpings of the buffet because it was too good to go to waste.
Just after Olly left you, again being dragged away into a conversation with his Mum and another of her friends, you saw your little cousin Sam heading towards you again. This time a plate full of crisps and brownies in his hands and after plopping them on the table, the little 7 year old comes around so he can sit with you.
As you lift him up and place him on your knee so he's facing Matty, you kiss the top of his head and smile as you ask, with a hint of warning, "You gonna try again?"
"Erm, yeah." The little man giggles a little shyly before he looks at your boyfriend and smiles, "Hi, I'm Sam."
"Hiya Sam," Matty grins, and offers him a high five, "Nice to meet you. I'm Matty."
"Yeah, I know." Sam nods and proudly tells your boyfriend with a big smile, "Auntie Y/N taught me."
"Oh yeah? I bet she has." Matty grins, his eyes flicking from Sam to you and you glare back at him. Even more so when he asks him, "What did she teach you?"
"Your names, your bands name," Your little cousin starts holding up his fingers as he counts, "And the lyrics to your songs."
"Really?" Matty raises his eyebrows entirely amused and not at all surprised anymore. Your boyfriend pries further, "Does Auntie Y/N/N go on about me all the time?"
"No." Leaves your lips immediately but simultaneously little Sam nods, "Yes she does."
And Matty snorts, inclined to believe your cousin over you after all he's heard tonight so he grins at the little boy and half whispers, "I knew it."
Sam starts laughing at that, noting your distaste when you whisper, "You traitor." In his ear which makes him laugh even louder. You can't even pretend you're upset with him because he's just too god damn cute.
But he becomes even cuter when he leans closer to Matty and asks, "Is George actually your best friend?"
Your boyfriend's face lights up at the mention of his friend, and Matty nods in confirmation, "Yeah he is."
"He's so tall!" Sam yells as he raises his arms above his head as high as they will go to try and emphasise just how tall George is, and you think that he would be just as enamoured meeting George as he is with Matty.
Matty chuckles, "I know." Not being able to help but slowly fall in love with the child who's snuggled into your lap.
Each time you kiss his short dark hair, Matty finds his heart skipping a beat. Seeing you with the kid is making him think about the possibilities of your future together and he loves the way he can see it so clearly, he quickly realises just how desperately he wants that for the both of you.
Although, Matty might reconsider when little Sam tells him, "Auntie Y/N/N laughed once and called you the short one."
"Of course she did." Matty shakes his head, looking up at you disapprovingly before he points between the two of us and declares, "Divorced."
Your jaw falls at that which makes little Sam laugh loudly. Matty offers Sam a fist bump as they both start laughing and you let Sam slip from your lap so he can close the distance to Matty on his own two feet.
After the very excitable fist bump Matty ruffles the little man's hair before he wanders off and goes back to playing with your other little cousins. You look back at your gorgeous curly haired brunette and ask, "Divorced then?"
"Oh absolutely not," Matty smirks, shuffling his seat right beside yours so he can wrap his arm around the back of you and he pulls you against him as he whispers in your ear, "Wouldn't know how to live without you now baby, you're mine. Always."
Feeling him plant a quick kiss just under your ear has you needing to take another few seconds to steady your thundering heart after hearing those words. God you love him so so much, and it means more to you that he's still saying all these things after you've been outed all evening by various members of your family.
Just after your little moment, Olly comes back over with more drinks for the two of you, courtesy of your Uncle who just bought a round. And after that people start getting up to dance, so it is hard to stay sitting down when the dance floor gets crowded and you have an excuse to enjoy the music with your boyfriend.
Your cheeks hurt from grinning so hard by the time you get thirsty enough to leave your boyfriend's side and go to the bar. You don't think you'll ever forget the way Matty sang Crazy in Love by Beyonce to you with his arm clutching you tightly against him. Those three words hung on the tip of your tongue and were so close to slipping out during the entirety of that song.
You didn't even have it in you to be embarrassed of the heated kiss you gave Matty when the song came to an end, hoping that the perfect fit of your lips and the rush of emotions that exuded from your pores was felt and understood by him.
When you get to the bar, you look over your shoulder to see your boyfriend taking a seat by your table again. It was pathetic how the bartender catches you staring at the man of your dreams and has to call for you twice before you come out of your trance to give him your order.
The heat in your cheeks doesn't leave, not even when the bartender hands you the drinks and you thank him. But the blush of your cheeks only becomes more noticeable when you turn around to make way back to Matty and you see him with your precious little Sam sitting on his knee, chatting his ear off.
When getting closer to your two favourite boys, your heart flips seeing both of their big grins. You commit the moment to memory as best you can because you don't think you've ever seen anything cuter. However, your doting turns to shock when you get closer and you hear Sam ask your boyfriend a rather shocking question.
"Right, so did you actually get shot and how much money did you steal from that shop?"
"Erm," You stop dead in your tracks as you put your drinks down, and you look between them as you ask, "What's going on?"
Both of them seem to be too involved in their conversation because they ignore you and Matty explains, "Well you see, that wasn't real so I didn't actually get shot but I reckon I took a lot of money."
At that point you understand that they are talking about the Robbers music video that you've put on the clean version of in the past for him. The kid was so smart though that despite not seeing a gun he spotted the blood on Matty so you had to gently explain that he got shot, but that he was okay and fine now.
Little Sam smiles and hugs your boyfriend, "Good. Proud of you, Uncle Matty."
That right there, that Uncle Matty melted both Matty's heart and your own. You don't think you've heard anything cuter and it means the world to the both of you in different ways. You can see it in Matty's eyes, which instantly fall on you at the sound of those words coming from little Sam.
Both of you feel like something locks into place as if that alone is the confirmation of it all. He's yours entirely, and you're his, and neither of you plan on changing that at all. You're sure that an I love you passes between you in that moment. Maybe it's not verbalised, but the way you both look at each screams it, but unfortunately it's not the time or the place to tell each other right now.
"So, Sam," Matty clears his throat a little after giving your little cousin another tight squeeze, "What's your favourite song?"
"Ermmm," Sam thinks for a few seconds before looking at you as he inquires, "The one with all the colours and the numbers." And you can't help but smile at the memories of you having a dance around your Mum and Dads lounge with Sam in your arms as you taught him the fun song.
"TooTime?" Matty starts singing the chorus of it to him then, holding his fingers up for each of the numbers and Sam happily sings along knowing every word.
Both of them succeed in melting your heart even more and love Matty's giggle once he's finished when he asks your little cousin, "Ah yes that's a good one, innit?"
"I love it!" Sam shouts, trying to show just how much he loves it. Matty chuckles at him then, and he happily asks, "Do you want to sing it with me on Karaoke later?"
"Yes!" Little Sam cheers, throwing his arms up in excitement, "I know all of it!"
"Oh wow," Matty gasps and grins showing just how impressed he is with the little guy, "Your Auntie Y/N has taught you very well." Sam nods then looking at you brightly, and you can't help but grin back. He's the most adorable little 6 year old in the world with his ebony hair and green eyes.Â
"She's my favourite." Sam tells Matty but it's loud enough for you to hear and you can't help the smile that comes to your face. But your joy slowly slips to curiosity when Matty covers his mouth as he whispers into your little cousin's ear, and slowly you watch as Sam's face lights up. You try but you can't hear what he tells your little cousin over the music that the DJ is playing for the now drunk women on the dancefloor.
So you lean forward and tap Sam's knee, asking, "What's he saying?"
Little Sam looks up at Matty, smiles, and then looks back to you and smirks, "Can't tell you."
You exaggerate your gasp before you say, "You can't have secrets from your favourite."
Sam's very smug when he declares, "Uncle Matty's also my favourite so I can." You playfully narrow your eyes at the child in your boyfriend's lap, but you can't help but adore the way Matty's face lights up at what he said. Whether it was just in jest or not, he loves that he's already being welcomed into the family with open arms.
"When did you get so sassy?" You ask Sam, and when he only offers you a small shrug in answer, you start standing up when you say, "And I'm telling Uncle Olly he's not your favourite Uncle anymore."
Hearing that makes Sam's eyes go wide, "No!"
"I'm telling him right now." You say as you start walking away from the table with a grin on your face.
"Auntie Y/N!" Your little cousin shouts as he scrambles from Matty's lap and chases after you.
Your boyfriend can't help but laugh at the cute scene playing out. He watches as you walk over to Olly who's at the bar with more of his family and Sam is yelling no at you, pleading with you not to spill his secret.
As he watches Olly's jaw dramatically fall though, Matty knows the classified information is out and it's funny watching little Sam be picked up by Olly who he gives a big hug too, and afterwards he's passed to you where you also receive a hug and a big kiss to your cheek.
Matty watches on with adoration in his eyes, loving seeing you so happy. All Matty hopes now is that Sam doesn't reveal their own little secret of what he whispered into his ear.
"Keep it a secret for me, but she's my favourite too. I love her lots."
~*~*~*~
With the kids up on the dancefloor, finally entertaining each other instead of embarrassing you, Matty and you get a moment to breathe. Something which leads to your Mum and Auntie waving the both of you over to them and after sitting down at the circular table, you and Matty fall into easy conversation with them.
You're sitting beside Matty and your Auntie, and your Mum's on your boyfriend's other side, and you and your boyfriend love being filled in on your family gossip that your Auntie has managed to acquire all evening. And you can't help but laugh at how eager Matty looks to be soaking in all of the rumours and theories the sisters have to offer considering he doesn't know half the people that they're talking about.
"So Matty," Your Mum asks, moving the conversation on and gaining his full attention, "When do you go back on tour?"
"Oh well, we have SNL on the eleventh of March and then we pretty much go straight on to doing festivals." Your boyfriend explains.
Your Mum tilts her head a little when she asks, "SNL?" Looking to you for an explanation which you don't hesitate to give her.
"It's that American sketch show that's on at midnight with all of the 'comedians' but they have musical guests on too." You tell them, you're Auntie nodding along in recognition.
"Oh," Your Mum's eyes flick straight back to Matty, her smile is bright as she says, "That sounds fun."
"I think it is to some people. It's entirely too American for me." Matty tells her and your Auntie honestly with a waft of his hand, "But they have us there practising for a full week before even when we've done months of practising the songs on tour."
Needless to say when the announcement went out that they were on SNL you were a little gutted to find that the band weren't going to be involved in any of the sketches themselves. But you guess the average American audience isn't going to want 4 men from Wilmslow when they could have Jenna Ortega instead.
There are mumbles from the sisters about how annoying the rehearsing must be for your boyfriend and the band, but then your Mum turns towards you and asks, "Are you joining him, Y/N/N?"
"Unfortunately, I'll be on the other side of the country," You pout, hating the fact that their SNL date is the night before the Oscars. You smile, "But I'll certainly be watching on TV."
Matty shuffles his chair a bit closer to yours as he proposes over the music, resting his hand on your thigh as he does, "You could join me earlier in the week if you fancy it?"
"I'll have a look what the plan is for rehearsals and meetings beforehand but everything's so busy." You sigh really wishing you could because you'd love to explore New York as you've yet to go. Matty nods understandingly as you lace your fingers with his on your thigh and give him a squeeze. But before he can respond, your auntie chips in, putting her hand on the table in front of you and taps.
"Speaking of," She starts, and gives you her raised eyebrow look that screams you're about to be told off, "You've been so busy you've not done any more book videos recently!"
"I know, I'm sorry," You sigh and pout a bit, half feeling like you've let both her and yourself down since you haven't read and reacted to her or your Mum's recommendations. "I'll jump back in soon. I swear."
You continue to explain yourself, "I've got Amelia's cooking show to edit this week and the Oscar's to prepare for so no updates yet unfortunately."
"Terrible." Your Auntie shakes her head in fake disapproval which makes you laugh so you blow her a kiss to appease her.
As she catches it and pretends to pocket it for later, you catch Matty looking at you curiously, and after raising an eyebrow at him, he asks you, "Book videos?"
"You know how Amelia's got her cooking show as a side gig from Chicken Shop Date?" You ask and Matty nods, having seen that on her instagram in the past, so you continue to explain, "Yeah, well I do like book reviews and stuff on TikTok and Instagram."
"Wait, what?" Matty blinks a couple of times, entirely confused because he's never come across this before. "Why haven't I seen this? I've not even seen you reading."
Yes, he'd seen a bookshelf that was filled back at your flat and books above your desk but nothing that screamed you were a massive reader. A book hoarder maybe, but you'd never even mentioned it to him. Nevermind having not seen anything on your social media about you reading, or being big into giving reviews on them.
"It's on a side account, I keep it separate. Don't post about it on my main account all that often." You explain, before you give him an accusing look, "And I think your tour kept me a bit preoccupied, didn't it? Definitely didn't have time to read then."
Matty almost starts laughing, "It's been a while since tour, baby."
"Okay," You sigh in defeat, but you try and evade the blame regardless by passing it on to him, "You've kept me preoccupied then. No time for reading at the moment."
Your boyfriend hums, accepting his fate for now and not bringing up the fact that you've been deep in your Oscars research for the last few weeks and stressing yourself out over that. His distractions he thinks were the best stress relievers for you, but little did he know you had a different hobby that could have been just as effective. Maybe he'll take you out book shopping in the next few days to treat you to whatever you fancy as a good luck present before he flies to America.
"And I think you forget you only started following me personally in October, life's been pretty hectic for us both since then." You raise your eyebrows at him, but your boyfriend just rolls his eyes playfully knowing you'd pin the blame on him even more somehow.
"Show me?" Matty asks, leaning closer like his proximity will convince you further.
He feels like he needs to find this other piece of your jigsaw. He's half upset with himself that he didn't pick up on your love for literature before now, and the instant you show him he will be following your account.
You smile, tilting your head a little and you look into those gorgeous brown eyes promising, "Later."
"Okay." Matty agrees with a grin before leaning in that bit more and pressing a kiss to your lips.
You savour the first peck you've received in a while and you can't get the smile off your face. Not even as you look back across the table to your Mum and Aunt who are looking at the both of you like gossiping school girls, and you already know you're about to get some teasing.
Your Auntie Sharon can't help but ask you, "Do you feel like you're living some teenage dream?"
Matty cackles at that and pulls you into his side, so you just let your head rest on his shoulder as you giggle and nod, "Every day," and you love the smile the sisters send your way.
It's easy for both you and Matty to see that they are overjoyed with just how happy you are. Matty doesn't think he's ever quite seen so much love shine from a mother and auntie and it makes your boyfriend so beyond happy to see just how much your family adore you and want the best for you. And he loves the fact that he seems to have their approval, if their reactions are anything to go by. He's unable to stop himself from kissing the top of your head.
"Speaking of," Matty says, pulling back for a moment so you can see him again, and he has the biggest grin you've ever seen on his lips, "I wanna see your room."
Immediately you remember that you need to gut the place as soon as you get back home. Your Mum starts silently pissing herself at Matty's request and you know your Aunt has seen the state of your bedroom too so she knows the panic you must be feeling. You 100% can not have him see the posters of his band on your wall, so you just chuckle and shake your head, "Not until later."
And thankfully Matty doesn't get the chance to pry because your 3 little cousins run up to the both of you and start begging your boyfriend to join them on karaoke which he agrees to very quickly. And it is one of the best moments of the night when you see the four of them up there singing, the kids really needing the autotune Matty normally has on but it's adorable nevertheless. And your heart all but stops when your boyfriend gets them all dancing, but it's when Zack and his little sister Macie pull you up with them to dance too which is the most fun. Because never in your life has it been hard to dance to one of Matty's songs.
Afterwards the night seems to pass by in a blur of dancing, loud music, and alcohol. Around 10, the kids end up leaving as they are all slowly falling asleep and the parents take them home but not before you kiss your little cousins goodbye.
After Olly leaves, you and Matty stick to yourselves in the booth that the three of you were once occupying. And the rest of your night is spent drinking and people watching from your quiet corner of the room.
You're unsure how, but you end up sitting in Mattys lap, his hold on your waist tight to keep you cosied up to him and your legs are over him, his other hand gently stroking the back of your thigh. The anecdotes of your family has Matty giggling and he loves hearing you talk about them with such delight clear in your voice.
The joy sticks with the both of you as you leave and make it back to your parents house. Your family's drunk antics have you all giggling in the back of the taxi and the laughter continues once you're all inside your childhood home.
Your Dad heads straight for the kitchen for another beer and he offers Matty one which he politely declines after your Mum offers him a cup of tea instead. You jump on the brew order, not needing to be any more tipsy than you already are and so your Mum puts your Dad to work making those.
Just as Matty's slipping his shoes off in the hall, he asks you, "Where's your toilet?"
"Upstairs, and it's the second door on the left." You tell him, "Don't get lost."
"I'll endeavour not to." Your boyfriend smiles before quickly kissing your cheek and jogging up the stairs.
You can't quite get the grin off your face as you head into the lounge, and you see your Mum smiling at you and you give her a hug because you could never give the gorgeous woman enough of them. She embraces you like any loving mother should, giving you a long warm hug which you realise how much you miss not being at your disposal all the time. When you pull back from her, she doesn't let you go far, holding your shoulders as she gives you a look that screams she's about to be serious.
"So," She starts.
You're a bit nervous asking, "So?"
"You're happy?" Your Mum asks, and you all but breathe a sigh of relief.
You promise her, a smile growing on your face as you nod, "The happiest I've been in a long time."
"It shows, darling." She grins, and rubs your arms a little as she continues, "I'm so thrilled for you."
"You approve then?" You ask after giggling a little.
"Not that us not approving would make a single bit of difference to you going out with the man who you've got posters of in your bedroom." Your Mum laughs a bit but nods, "He's a gentleman, couldn't ask for any better."
Your stomach drops slightly, still stuck on the first thing she said, "I need to take them down," You panic knowing there's a fair bit of 1975 memorabilia in your bedroom, so you plead with her, "You'll have to distract him for me in a bit."
"I will happily chat his ears off. And yes, we approve." You Mum chuckles, but then her words almost make you cry when she softly grabs your hand and squeezes as she says, "It'd be difficult not to when you see someone caring for your daughter and making her so happy."
Swallowing the lump in your throat, you pull her into another tight hug and after a second of being in her embrace you whisper, "Thank you Mum. Love you."
"Love you more," She tells you before your Dad shouts that your drinks are ready in the kitchen.
The cup of tea was a much needed rest bite after a night of drinking, but you realise how much time has passed when you're half way through your brew and Matty's still not come down to collect his. "He's been up there a while." You hum aloud, getting slightly paranoid he's in your bedroom, planning an escape after seeing himself on your bedroom walls.
Your Dad laughs, "Still on the toilet or snooping?"
"Either is plausible. He also could have fallen asleep." You chuckle, but then you decide to grab both of your brews and head upstairs, "I'll go up and make sure he's not stuck in the bathroom."
"Night lovie." Your Mum blows you a kiss after your Dad says, "Goodnight."
"Night night." You smile before heading up.
And you know your fears are confirmed that your boyfriend is in fact having a nosey when you see that your bedroom door is open and the light is on. Sighing slightly, you prepare to bite the bullet and you step into your old room and see that your boyfriend is standing, staring at your poster filled walls.
"You're a snoop." You shake your head as you put your mugs down on your bedside table.
Matty's head flies around to look at you then, and thankfully instead of seeing horror, his face is full of amusement.
"Can you blame me?" Your boyfriend chuckles, looking back at your walls, "I feel like I've just walked into your head."
He's not far wrong with that analogy. There's the big black and white 1975 poster on your wall which is the same as the picture inside the self titled vinyl of the boys in 2013. Smaller posters surround it, some of other musicians like Lana Del Rey, The Neighbourhood, and you have a bigger Arctic Monkeys one from the AM era not far from it.
Horrifyingly for you though, there's a lot more 1975 stuff around your room though, whether that be the vinyls proudly displayed on your shelves, lyrics posters, little drawings of the band you found online in your youth that you were gifted for your birthday. Not to mention pictures you had printed out from their various gigs you've been to over the year. There was a lot of memorabilia to say the least, and you just have to pray your boyfriend doesn't run in the other direction.
On the brighter side, looking at your bedroom now you realise that if you posted a picture of it to Tumblr back in the day you'd have gone viral long before Chicken Shop Date ever existed. What a wasted opportunity, because you certainly won't be doing so now.
"Yeah twenty-year-old-me's head." You chuckle, because if you don't laugh at yourself, you will cry. "You don't consume my head like this anymore."
Matty glances at you then and his look screams that he doesn't believe a word that's just left your lips. Which in fairness it was a bit of a lie, but he consumes your thoughts now in a much different way to what he did back then. You loved his music and the version of himself he let the world see back then, but now you're in love with him, the real him, more and more so every day.
You hum truthfully, "There's a few more posters I'd have up now of a few other people."
"Slightly offended," Matty nods, turning properly towards you then, "But I'll allow it."
Your boyfriend steps to just in front of you then, and he grabs your hands and squeezes them for a second before he moves closer and holds your hips to his instead. There's a small hopeful smile on your face then, feeling like from the gesture alone you don't have to be scared of the answer to your question, "Scared you off?"
Matty silently chuckles at that, and he looks so lovingly into your eyes that you're sure your heart skips a beat as he says, "You'd have to have a lot worse than posters of my band on your wall to scare me off baby."
You hum, your grin getting bigger as you wrap your arms around his neck and start twirling the curls at the back of his head. "You don't know about a few things."
"The cardboard cutout of me in your wardrobe?" Matty can't help but grin with a raised eyebrow.
Your jaw falls open, and you're fully frozen for a moment before you gasp, "You massive snoop!"
Matty quickly kisses your shock away with a laugh before pulling out of your grasp and heading over to the guilty wardrobe. He looks so excited to reveal it, it makes you want to die. "No, your Mum told me about that one." Matty gets the door, opening it to reveal that on the back of the door is a 2014 him with his hair flicked over to one side of his head, wearing a denim jacket and black skinny jeans.
Whilst you're mortified because your boyfriend has seen a cardboard cutout of himself, you can't help the small smile that forms on your lips in reaction to that picture of him. It's always been one of your favourites, but it seems Matty doesn't feel the same way.
Matty's frowning as he looks at himself, "That's such an awkward picture of me."
"Don't you dare," You slap his shoulder, upset that he feels that way about that picture of himself, "It was one of my favourites."
Matty hums, looking between you and the life-sized cutout before asking you accusingly, "How many times have you kissed it?"
"No," Your face immediately flushes then, and your hands come up to hide yourself from him as you scorn, "Stop it Matthew."
Your boyfriend can't help the loud laugh that leaves his lips then, your reaction alone being confirmation enough for him. "I'll take that as more than once." Matty chuckles as he wraps his arms around you and lifts you up twirling you around which makes a little surprised squeal leave you.
It ends up with you both giggling and as Matty places you back on solid ground, he's unable to stop himself from gently grabbing your chin and guiding your lips to his. Only then does a satisfied hum leave his lips, feeling like he's been starved of your kisses all night in comparison to how you've been together the past few weeks.
You stand there for a little while, blissed out in each other's company as you kiss, needing it after a long night of you being surrounded by others. Your little bubble is back and you take full advantage of having him back all to yourself. The love you have for this man radiates from you and you hope that he can feel it despite you still not being brave enough to say it out loud. But at this point words aren't necessary, the way you are with each other speaks volumes and it's clear to everyone who sees you that the two of you are in love. And you can both feel it too.
Once you eventually catch up on lost time from having his lips on your own, you take a seat on your bed after handing Matty his brew and you start finishing your own as your boyfriend carries on looking around your bedroom.Â
"Now I know you're into reading, I'm only just realising how many books you have." He smiles, glancing over the shelves across the top of your picture rail that are filled to the brim with books.
"Yeah," You hum, looking at them with a smile on your face before you explain, "They are all in different spots in my flat so I guess it's not as obvious it's a hobby."
"You have so many." Matty smiles, and after taking a sip of his tea he asks, "Have you read them all?"
"God no," You shake your head, "Probably most of them, but the aim is to fill out a little library room in my future home. That's the dream... Rolling ladder and everything."
The smile Matty gives you then makes your heart warm, and it's every girl's dream that their boyfriend responds to that dream with, "I'm down to make that happen."
As you take your last gulp of your tea, Matty moves over to the set of books that are proudly displayed on top of your chest of drawers and asks, "What are these books with the tabs in?"
And seeing the multicoloured series combined with your boyfriend picking one up, it makes you almost spit your tea out. Attempting to remain calm, you shake your head and nod to the red book in his hand, "We don't talk about these books. Pretend you never saw them."
Matty flips it round to see the cover properly and starts, "A Court of-"
"No," You all but yelp as you stand and grab the book from his hand and place it nearly back with the others in the series, "You never saw them, ignore them."
"Hard to ignore when there's so many notes in them." Matty raises his eyebrows at you.
"Hush." You say, grabbing his free hand and pulling him back towards your bed, "You've just reminded me I need to text Flo."
"What you texting her about?" Your boyfriend asks as you get her contact up on your phone, "I've not done anything wrong, have I?
"No," You chuckle, squeezing his hand before you let it go as you sit on your bed and start typing, "You're good. I promise."
Just wondering if it was you or Alex who read acomaf and he wrote body paint bc you recreated a specific chapter????? Let me know đx
Matty sees you grinning as you type out your text, so he has to ask, "What you messaging her?"
As your boyfriend tries to be nosy and sits beside you, trying to look over at your phone, after sending the message you lock your phone and smile at him. You briefly lean towards him and place a kiss on his cheek after you say, "That's for me and her to know and for you and Alex to find out."
Matty hums and kisses your lips, but then he smirks as he says, "Sounds like a fun night."
You burst out laughing, "Shut up."
And in the morning you'll be laughing again when you see Florence's reply of, I'll leave you to your own deductions, but I'll say there's more than one reason I call him Darling... If you know what I mean đđx
Feeling the day start to catch up with you, you start getting yourself ready for bed, getting your pyjamas on and you leave Matty in your room as you head to the bathroom to brush your teeth. You're happily washing your face still with the slight buzz all the alcohol you had tonight mixed with feeling head over heels in love, and you look at yourself in the mirror and notice just how happy you are.
You truly don't think you've ever been this happy in yourself. Everything in your life is currently so amazing and has a magical feel to it, you hope that this joy you're feeling never ends. You have a career which is only flourishing more and more now you and Amelia are getting the credit you've long deserved, your family are all happy and healthy, and you have a boyfriend who makes you feel like a princess and who you're madly in love with.
However, happiness like this can't last forever. And your boyfriend makes damn sure of that. From the bathroom, you hear him shout your name and when you respond, he asks, "Why have you marked a page where the guy says, 'Put your hands on the headboard.'?"
You all but choke on the air in your lungs, and you can see your now horrified expression in the mirror as you yell back, "No, STOP!"
"You dirty bitch," Matty laughs loudly, "You marked all of the sex scenes."
You barely dry your face before running back to your room and see the horrific sight that is Matty Healy reading A Court Of Silver Flames on your bed. It's all forms of wrong, mostly because he's reading the smut, but also because he's reading the 5th instalment of the series first and that's crazy spoilers.
It gets worse for you when you see him flick to another of your tabs earlier in the book and his eyes go wide after he looks at the page and then to you and there is the beginnings of a smirk on his lips as he asks, "They did what under the table?"
"Matty, give me the book." You hold your hand out to it, but your boyfriend has none of it.
His eyes are back on the page, no doubt reading the notes you annotated on the page, and he can't help but laugh, "So that's where you learned to do that."
At this point you've had enough, fully scurrying over your bed and throwing a leg over to straddle him to try and pin him down to your bed as you try and get your book back. "That book came out two years ago. I knew how to do that long before," You make it very clear.
Matty can only cackle, trying to push himself up and raising the book above his head so it's out of your reach. He shakes his head at you, but his smile is coy and suggestive as he looks at you accusingly, "You filthy little slut."
"Don't call me that when you've just read that." You warn him, shaking your head, one hand thankfully now on your book, "I know what you're doing."
"Caught me." Matty chuckles, still not releasing your novel though. He smirks as he says, "You're still a slut though."
You sigh at that and just decide to own it and shrug with a little smile finding its way to your lips. But you can't help but laugh when Matty adds, "My slut." And you just quickly lean down and press a kiss to his lips to shut him up.
When you finally pry the book from your boyfriend's hands and he laughs at you for quite a while, but you just put it back where it belongs before getting yourself into bed. Matty then decides he wants to do his skincare which makes you whine, not bothering to do yours tonight, and after you told him this he decided that he was going to be the one to take on the task.
After telling him off for using far too much product both on his face and your own, the both of you settle into bed, only being disturbed by your Mum knocking on your door to ask if Matty was indeed snooping. You all laugh after you tell her that he was and your boyfriend tries to defend himself which makes you scoff. Your Mum just laughs along before bidding the both of you goodnight.
Fifteen minutes pass of you and Matty catching up on the day's events that you might have missed on your phones. But then Matty gets carried away when he asks for your BookTok account and you reluctantly show him which leads to him going down a rabbit hole with your videos for another 10 minutes before you confiscate his phone and tell him that he can look at more tomorrow.
Now, you're both cuddled up in the darkness of your room, breathing each other in and you're practically melting into your boyfriend as his hand is routed in your hair, giving you a head massage. You're getting sleepy now, the alcohol definitely catching up with you and being so warm in the arms of the man you love only adds to the comfort and peacefulness.
Before you succumb to sleep, you say, "Thank you for being so lovely with my family tonight."
"Thank you for inviting me, baby." Matty smiles, kissing your forehead softly as he adds, "I had a lovely time."
"Truly Matty," You say, sounding a little more awake as you really want him to know how genuine you are when you say, "Thank you for being so lovely, especially with the kids."
Matty is smiling at the memory of all of you on the dancefloor earlier this evening when he tells you honestly, "I love kids. It was no trouble at all."
You hum, already knowing just how good he was with children. Seeing him with Adam and Carly's little boy was enough proof of that, but him being equally as adorable with your family really melted your heart. It certainly had you thinking about future possibilities.
"I think Sam liked you." You whisper into his neck. Matty hums in agreement, and after a few seconds he replies, "I think Sam's my favourite of them, if I'm allowed to say that."
"I don't think we're supposed to admit it, but he's my favourite too." You spill your little secret. You do miss the nights you were babysitting him a lot, you miss him like crazy and you are definitely going to arrange for him to come to your flat again soon so you can spoil him rotten.
You can't get over tonight though, the memories replaying quickly in your mind leads you to be grinning like a fool as you say, "You doing karaoke with him might have been my favourite moment of tonight."
Matty's kissing your forehead again and you expect another hum of agreement, but he surprises you when he says, "My favourite moment was finding that cardboard cut out."
Immediately you slap his bare chest and tell him, "Stop it right now," as you feel yourself flush.
Matty can't help his cackle then, but he has to push you a little, "What would nineteen year old you be thinking right now if she knew ten years later I'd be in this bed with you?"
You chuckle at that, and there's no hesitation in your answer, "She'd be saying 'fuck the risks, get all his clothes off'." You tease him then and let your hand run down his chest until your fingertips are tracing the elastic of his boxers.
Matty's breath catches in his throat for a second then, but he thinks he does well at restraining himself when he just brushes his lips against your ear and encourages, "You're more than welcome to."
You smirk, loving the thought but you're having none of it, "Absolutely not."
Matty chuckles knowing it was coming and he can only say he's thankful that you move your hand from his waistband before any more sinful thoughts run through his mind. Although he thinks the fact he's quite literally on your walls and the revelation he's had about you reading smutty books, he does think you'd quite enjoy what he has in mind. Maybe another time though.
There's a few minutes of silence between you then, and you're very nearly asleep when your boyfriend asks, "Got anything else you wanna tell me baby?"
By your slow and sleepy response alone, Matty knows he's lucky he caught you still awake, "Nothing else yet until we're married with kids so you can't run away scared."
"Come on, can't be that bad." He encourages.
You hum, "It is." But you're happy enough as there's no way in hell you're telling him a thing.
Matty lets the silence pass between you then, and you're about to slip into sleep until he speaks back up. And your world cracks with his words, "Is it the fanfiction you wrote about me?"
Pulling out of his grasp immediately, you feel wide awake with your heart beating out of your chest as you stumble asking, "How- H- How do you know about that?" Your blood has certainly just run cold and you're sure that if there was any light in the room you would look extremely ill because you certainly feel it. Never have you felt so mortified in your life.
But Matty's just grinning as he explains, "Dimz is very keen on embarrassing you when she's drunk."
"I hate her so much." You curse her as you roll away from him and hide into your pillow, willing your bed to suffocate you.
Matty just laughs at your reaction though and follows you over to the other side of your bed. He doesn't let you escape, instead he wraps his arm around your waist and pulls you gently back into him as he says into your ear, "I wanna know what it's called and what it was about."
"Absolutely not, no, never." You mumble into your pillow.Â
After a few minutes of reassurance that he's not bothered by it, and he hasn't been put off by your deepest darkest secret, you vow that you're going to get Amelia back for her betrayal. Apparently he's known about it for a while and has never been fussed by the news, which might be the only blessing of the whole situation. Although you still would have preferred him to find out about it years, if not decades down the line.
Eventually, after a lot of coxing and playful kisses, he has you back facing him and you've relaxed against his warm body again. And you think your soul yearns for him once more when his nose rubs against yours as he whispers, "Obsessed with you baby."
"Obsessed with you too." You hum, a smile dancing over your lips which Matty can't help but kiss a few times.
Only when your kisses cease does he grin, "Oh, I know."
~*~*~*~ 7th March 2023 ~*~*~*~
Going to Los Angeles, for one of the most nerve-wracking weekends of your life, after having spent the best time with your family and your boyfriend was a change big enough to give you whiplash. Not to mention the horrendous jet lag that had messed up your schedule the first day in LA.
You and Amelia had been trying to fight the consequences of the change of time-zones, and the effects of your nerves when thinking of the upcoming events. At least you were able to be productive when you and your best friend were stuck being up during the night, and had started your practising of questions and notes about all the different people that would attend the Oscars After Party.
The day has been spent rehearsing, doing fittings for the content you were recording, and having a meeting with the Vanity Fair team. And though you've only done a few things, the day has felt so long; you could've shed tears of happiness when getting back to your hotel room. It is mostly because jet lag has been kicking your arse, so running yourself a bath and reading a book in the tub is your form of self-care tonight.
You do your skincare routine once out of the bath and let your hair air dry as you continue reading your book. However, your reading is interrupted when your phone starts ringing from where it landed on the bed after you tossed it as soon as you got back.
You almost don't go over to pick it up, but when you catch a glimpse of a silly photo of your boyfriend that you have as his contact picture, you almost throw the book over your shoulder and answer his call.
"How's your day going baby?" He says with a loopy smile as soon as you answer.
It's embarrassing the way your expression instantly falls into an enamoured one when you see his pretty face. For a second, you forget how draining the day has been, until you remember he asked you a question, "Yeah okay, thank you. It's just such a massive production, it's a lot to wrap my head around." When you think about it, you get nervous all over again, "I'm glad we got here a week before; lets it all sink in a bit more."
"Yeah and it's completely understandable that you'd need time to adjust to it," He can also see how tired you look, probably jet lag, and the nerves must be playing with you to make it worse. "Remember it's still only your third carpet like this and you've smashed it each time, so you're only gonna get better and better."
You roll your eyes at yourself because your insides melt when hearing him reassure you. A drunk-in-love giggle almost slips past your lips as you say, "Thank you baby, I hope so."
Matty is not having any doubt though, so he states, "You will."
If he keeps saying stuff like that, you will either cry because he's not next to you or simply manage to push those three words that keep coming to your mind when you see him, so you change the topic, "Well enough about me, how are your rehearsals going?"
You need the inside gossip on Saturday Night Live. Any and all details you'll happily eat up.
"It's okay, thank you. Just boring as fuck now the promo pictures and clips are done," The way he sighs and rolls his eyes in annoyance makes you giggle. He's a sassy one.
"Surely you get to see them practising the sketches," You reply excitedly, you had always been fascinated by the process behind SNL, "That must be cool."
He bursts your bubble by funnily pointing out, "No baby, it's so painfully American. Once you've seen it once. It's just shit."
"But you're so easily impressed," You joke with a smirk on your face. "How are you struggling?"
"Ha ha." He says dryly but a smile plays on those gorgeous lips, "You'd understand if you were here seeing it."
Your chest sinks a little as you say, "I'm sorry I can't be."
"Don't be silly, you're busy," Matty says quickly, taking it back because he did not mean to make it sound like that. There's a pout on your face though so to try and distract you, he continues updating you on his rehearsal process, "We're rehearsing for a few hours and then pissing about for the rest of the day."
That automatically piques your interest, "What have you been entertaining yourselves with?"
"Today I'm going to meet Caveh. Remember, he's the one I told you about that's basically fucked his marriage over the fact he's videoing every aspect of his life."
"Oh yeah. That should be interesting." The memory of Matty showing you about that man comes to the forefront of your mind, and after your boyfriend filled you in on some of the 'lore' behind him, you were very intrigued by him. So it would be fun to see what Matty could find out from meeting him.
Your boyfriend has been so fascinated by him that you can see his excitement through his expression, "Yeah, I'm looking forward to it."
"What else have you been occupying yourself with?" You further ask, because there is no way he has been able to stay in his hotel room doing nothing. He's full of energy, like a fucking golden retriever, and you know it very well.
Mysterious, as he always tries to be, he replies, "Something I actually need your help with soon."
You sigh, thinking back to the many things he had said prior to you parting ways, "Matty we've discussed this: I'm not sending nudes regardless of time difference."
"No baby, not that," He huffs funnily, before he backtracks and very honestly says, "Although I do want to FaceTime again later."
You narrow your eyes at him and deem him, "Filthy."
All smug, he shrugs, "You know me."
You shake your head at him, but your curiosity is itching you so you ask again, "What do you need me for other than your filthy habits?"
He sits up straight, and gets all serious, "So me and Jordan are filming some stuff, making it a bit of like a day-in-the-life thing but funny, hopefully. I was just wondering if you'd do the honour of editing it all together?"Â
You're so intrigued by him proposing the idea that he's essentially recording vlogs, not expecting that from him at all, so you're even more intrigued now as to which direction he will take when making them because there is no way it isn't for a bit that will become something bigger. While you try to think what he could be actually doing, you're silent so your boyfriend takes this as hesitancy and quickly adds, "No pressure if not, Jordan can manage just fine but I'd really love to have you involved in some way or another. And I know just how good you are, so I thought I'd ask."
You can't help but pout at him for being so cute, "I'd love to, might just have to finish it up properly after the Oscars."
He nods childishly, "Of course, that's fine."
Looking at your state, in your bathrobe while laying atop of the bed, you actually tell him, "You can send me stuff in the meantime, I'm not doing much when we aren't rehearsing, in fittings, or revising."
He tuts at you, "You should be out and about exploring LA."
You shrug, "Yeah but I plan to stay out here a bit longer so I can do that afterwards."
"I'm gonna fly out to you after SNL," Your boyfriend states.
Biting your bottom lip, you get a bit shy when you think you don't want to burden him by cutting short his very much needed rest before resuming his world tour, "You don't have to if you wanna go home."
He doesn't even have to think about it, "Why would I wanna be at home if you're not there?"
You press your lips together, holding back from the urge to screech at his words. Instead you let out an unconvinced, "Home comforts?"
He rolls his eyes, before staring at you through the screen, "You're my home comfort. Wherever you are is home, baby."
You can't hold it together anymore, covering your face with one of your hands and fully melting into the mountain of plush pillows, "I'm still too jet lagged for you to be cute, don't make me cry."
He coos, "Don't want you crying baby. I do miss you though."
"I miss you too..." you pout at him, and he pouts back while fluttering his lashes at you. You laugh at his puppy face, "God we're so pathetic, it's only been a few days."
He grins big and bright, "Ahhh but we're young romantics, it's the way."
You sigh, thinking ahead, "God help us when you go back on tour."
"Don't remind me," he groans, running a hand over his face. "I do hope you can come to a few of them."
You hum, as if you're considering it, but when you see him frowning, you giggle and assure him, "I'm sure I'll get to some."
In a shy little voice, he proposes, "You can book off our next UK tour."
"Well of course..." You say, because that was always the plan. You remember a very important aspect of a certain show though, "Just let me know when it'll be and I'll round up the family for your London date."
Your heart practically leaps from your chest when you see his face light up at the mention of your family and all those he had invited over to the shows, "Yes, I can't wait to have all the fam there!"
Something very important comes to mind when you think about his shows, so you feel the urge to say, "But can you do me a favour though and stop being a slut and pulling your top up when you sing? It's very distracting."
"I'll try," he quips back with a smirk. "Don't want to out you as my whore to your whole family, right?"
Your jaw is basically on the floor at his words, but you're quick to get yourself together and reply with rosy cheeks, "Okay, save those thoughts for later Mr. Healy."
His voice drops an octave when he says, "Baby..." with that smirk that makes your knees weak.
But you need to be strong so you look away and go back to something else, "Anyway, tell me more about your funny vlogs. And what elaborate title have you come up with for this series of videos?"
"I don't like the fact you know I've come up with a big name," He has the audacity to say with a frown.
You roll your eyes sarcastically, "You're so predictable." a smile playing on your lips that you can't quite hide.
He offers you a blank face and no enthusiasm as he says, "Gee, thanks."
"Come on, what's it called?" You urge, knowing that it's something ridiculous.
He sighs and lets the silence linger for a little, your curiosity growing and showing on your face, before he lets out, "A Theatrical Performance of an Intimate Moment."
You're so confused at first, the 'intimate moment' bit throwing you off instantly, so you quickly declare, "Yeah, I will definitely steer clear of actually being in these videos."
"Why?" He asks, almost offended.
You can't believe he's asking why when it's so obvious, "It sounds like a shit sex tape!"
He scoffs, shaking his head entirely in disapproval, "You're a little shit."
"L-" You catch yourself before you say it. A sarcastic 'love you' is not how you want to say those words for the first time. But you realise again just how much you need to say those words to him soon, it's getting painful to withhold them now. You laugh to disguise your previous mistake before saying, "Little shit I might be, but it does sound like a porno."
He thinks about it for a second, smirking when he gets your point, "Well, if you put it that way... You sure you don't wanna star in it baby?"
~*~*~*~ SNL Day ~*~*~*~
Matty is having an awful day. The worst in fact. For the most part, he tried not to let it show. He first battled his feelings by recording another section of the A Theatrical Performance of an Intimate Moment, but clearly being trapped inside a suitcase for a prolonged period of time left Matty to stew in his thoughts for a long while which made his mood worse when he eventually escaped his self-inflicted trap.
While the bits he directed Jordan to record of George slamming the now empty suitcase into a wall did make him laugh, the deflating feelings stuck around. And Matty would love to say the reason is solely because he's had enough of this week being trapped in America and being forced to be on the set of a show they weren't needed for five days of rehearsals for, he's lying to himself.
Matty knows and has buried the reason he's in such a foul mood now only hours before showtime is because he's not in America with you. He's on the other side of the country from you when all he's like to do is trap you in a never ending series of hugs and kisses. And to top the day off, he's barely had a chance to speak to you today with the time difference and the fact that you've been preparing and rehearsing yourself all day.
The only saving grace about today for Matty had been the meal that he had with his family and friends. The band, his Mum, Lincoln, and Jack and his fiance all had a big meal together in a lovely restaurant. But the actual saving grace of that meal was the fact it was the last time he spoke to you before he was whisked away back to Rockefeller Plaza for SNL.
You'd been telling him about your day which you'd mentioned had been really long, going over and over what was going ahead the following day. And then you told him that you were due a full dress rehearsal that evening which you were nervous for.
Matty reassured you endlessly, and he loved hearing your voice on the other end of the phone. It picked his mood up so much that when you eventually had to say goodbye because you were called upon, it left him longing for more. The last thing he wanted was to be overbearing, but maybe it was the mere fact that Matty knew he couldn't get ahold of you because your phone was in a green room in LA and not on your person just made you feel that much further from reach. His mood was back to being pouty and distant, the only thing he wanted to do was sit in the corner of his own green room in NYC and stare at pictures of you he had on his phone.
Whether that be the funny ones you'd snapped of yourself on his phone pulling a funny face when he wasn't watching just to fill his camera roll with nonsense, or the selfies he'd taken of you together in bed on lazy mornings. His favourites were the ones that just had you in it, the innocent ones that he'd take of you in his home, sitting reading away or cooking, or simply the ones of you giggling at something he said while he had his camera on you.
Matty adores every last inch of you, and he has your stunning faces memories down to the finest detail. How could he not when he's so irrevocably in love? All he wants right now is to be by your side cheering you on instead of hearing your prep day stories on the other end of the phone. Matty wishes he could actually be kissing your cheek instead of looking at his Lock Screen of him doing exactly that.
The singer releases a long sigh at the fact he can't do any of those things in the slightest and he won't be able to for quite a while. With another deflated sigh Matty locks his phone, closes his eyes and rests his head against the back of the settee. He planned on staying that way, maybe having a nap just to pass the time, until he felt a kick to the shin.
Opening his eyes, all Matty was met with is George frowning, asking, "Are you gonna get the stick out of your arse at some point today?"
"What?" He raises his eyebrows.
"You heard," The drummer tells him, "Pull the stick out your arse mate, you're in the worst mood."
Matty rolls his eyes at the drummer and mutters, "Sorry, I just want this to be over with now."
"It's alright, we get it, but come on. Can't have you looking like this when we've got America to impress."
He knows George is trying to make him laugh, but it fails. Matty shows no enthusiasm as he lets out a big exhale and his words come out defeated, "Yeah I know, I just wanna get it done."
"With a smile, I beg." Jamie pleads, putting his hands together to emphasise how much he would love for Matty to adorn that stage persona in another hour.
"Yeah, yeah."
Bless Adam, he hears and sees the lack of joy from Matty and he is quick to sit right next to him to offer, "You wanna talk about what's up?"
Matty sighs, allowing himself a deep breath to not let his mate be on the receiving end of his foul mood, "No Hann, I'm good. I don't even really know what's up, I just don't wanna be here anymore." It was just one of those days when everything felt wrong. He just couldn't be arsed anymore, especially with it being such an unnecessarily long gig, just so the only Americans who watched the dumb programme could go on twitter and ask 'who are these 1975 guys?'
However, Matty doesn't realise that everyone just knows he's in a bad mood because he's acting like a love sick puppy. "We've been here for days watching and waiting, and it's fucking boring at this point when we've performed these two songs almost a hundred times now."
Adam sighs, his hand coming to pat Matty's back in a show of reassurance, "I know mate, but after tonight we can go back home and be done with it."
Be done with it? God Matty can't wait for that moment. But going back home? While you're over in LA? Matty doesn't think he can do it at all. Not for another day. He can't begin to bear it. So after doing a bit of googling and seeing that no flight will get him there quick enough, Matty brings up a contact of a friend he's not long since left.
Jack, could I ask a massive favour please?
Matty doesn't have to wait long for a reply.
Course buddy, anything. What can I do for you?
After all arrangements are put in place not even ten minutes later, Matty locks his phone, his chest feeling lighter almost instantly and he disguards the device, "Right Jamie lets mess about, grab the guitar and I'll Google some chords, George you get the weed, Ross get the alcohol."
Ross scoffs and sarcastically asks, "Anything else sire?"
Matty groans, but a smile is still plastered on his face despite the fact that his following words sound slightly irritated, "Oh piss off."
Adam scolds Ross, pointing out, "He's smiling again, everyone do your tasks!"
In a few minutes, they're all sitting round the lounge area with Jamie playing the guitar, Matty using his phone looking for chords for different songs they all enjoy, George is rolling a couple spliffs, and Ross is pouring a few shots.
After the induction of alcohol and hearing Jamie Squire's phenomenal voice singing The Corrs, with everyone singing along to a bit of Shania Twain improv, Matty started to feel a lot better. Or that was until he got a tobacco craving and his usual security wasn't around to safely take him to where he needed. It hit Matty all over again then that he couldn't just go and have a fag in peace, he needed security, how depressing.
"Where's Mark?" He huffs like a little kid, the craving becoming an annoying itch he needs to scratch the more he looks around and can't find his security.
Ross is busy on his phone, so he barely looks up and shrugs to say, "Dunno."
An eye roll is all Matty offers the bassist, and then goes around the room and the hallways asking, "Anyone seen Mark? I wanna go for a smoke."
There is only so much the singer can go with getting the same negative response, especially since that irritation from earlier was creeping back on him and he was well aware of it. Matty ends up leaving their room just to see if the big man was standing guard outside, but unfortunately luck still isn't on his side as Mark's nowhere to be found.
With quick fingers, he messages Mark. Clear and straight to the point.
Mark, where you at man???
Wanna go for a smoke but you're not here to serve and protect?!?!?!!
Matty paces up and down the hall as he waits for an answer. He almost starts counting down the seconds it takes Mark to say something back after a few minutes, but before he can start cursing out to the wind, his phone pings in his hand.
Sorry Matty, had to go back to the hotel. Upset stomach from lunch, ain't a pretty sight.
He wants to pull the hair out of his scalp when reading that, groaning out loud at the news. There is no pun intended since his fingers move quicker than his thoughts when he replies:Â Shit man.Â
Mark has seen Matty grow up basically, and they are so far beyond regular human boundaries by now that it is a no-brainer for Matty to dial his phone number and wait for the big man to answer, even if he's in the bathroom.
Worried, the singer asks, "You okay mate?"
Mark very quickly lets out in that neutral tone he always uses, "Not really Matty. In a lot of pain."
"You on the shitter?" Matty snorts out at the end, still finding a bit of comedy in the situation.
He hears the man sigh loudly before scolding him, "You're a little shit. You've got Tim with you, I'll see you tomorrow."
Matty cackles at Mark's loss of patience, but he doesn't let him go without saying, "Jokes aside, I hope you're alright mate." Of course, as the kid he is, he cannot hold back from adding, "I'll buy you a new pair of pants for tomorrow."
"Get gone, you little fucker," Mark hisses down the line, making Matty erupt in a string of silly giggles. Hearing Matty's laughter always gets Mark, so he chuckles lightly before wishing the lad, "Good luck."
Mark definitely regrets being a nice person when all Matty does is quip back with, "Good luck on the shitter." The last that Matty hears on the phone is a loud huff that makes him cackle again, the echo of his laughter so loud in the empty halls that he misses any sound coming from the other side of the line before Mark hangs up.
Finding Mark's situation so hilarious lifts Matty's spirits, so he goes back into their greenroom with a loopy smile. Everyone is sort of shocked to see him smiling again, but they don't question it since they need him in the best of moods for the show.
Still craving a smoke though, Matty decides that instead of being a responsible adult and going to find Tim, he gathers the lads and takes the spliffs that George has so deftly rolled from the coffee table. Instead of being hounded outside and risking the full show going to shit, they opt for smoking into the vent of the bathroom ceiling in hopes that the smoke alarm doesn't go off. Matty can't help but also think that this is excellent material for A Theoretical Performance of an Intimate Moment so he asks Jordan to start filming too which ends up with the chosen few laughing loudly at the shit the singer spews from his mouth without any prompting.
Thankfully no fire alarm was sounded during the fun pastime, but each and every one of them smoking weed in the bathroom almost pulled a Mark and shat themselves when there was a loud knock on their greenroom door. Never had a spliff been put out faster than that moment, which when Matty, George, and Jordan all head back out to the lounge area to see it's only Denise and Lincoln at the door there's a silent groan for wasting the rest of a good smoke.
All that being said, the singer can't be annoyed seeing how happy his Mum currently looks as she makes Ross get up and give her a cuddle after she lets go of Adam. Once released from the hug, Denise turns to see the faint smile on Matty's face and declares it a far better state than what Adam told her it had been before. So she grins brightly and almost shouts, "Thank goodness you lot have got him in a better mood."
"You alright Mum?" Matty asks as he walks up to her and Lincoln.
"Good, thanks chick." Denise hums, and as she hugs her son, she adds, "You look like you're having fun."
Matty giggles, his eyes closing slightly as he gives her a squeeze, "Yeah it's been funny."
George is obviously the next target for Denise's hugs, but as the gentle giant hugs her, he realises his mistake when she all but freezes in his arms. He's not closed or moved away from the toilet door. Her keen sense of smell means that George gets a slap on the chest and a frown as she scolds both him, her son, and the photographer, "Have you boys been smoking weed in here?!"
Laughter fills the room then and despite the small plea from their surrogate mother to again quit smoking both nicotine and weed, they all fall into easy habits of entertaining each other. It was just like being back at the Healy Household back in the day. Denise mothering them and asking if they'd eaten, followed by random anecdotes, and tons of laughter.
That is only interrupted when Denise's nosy self sees a familiar phone lighting up with a picture of what she hopes will be her gorgeous daughter in law. So she announces, "Matt, your phone is ringing," from the other side of the room and holds up the screen so he can see it is you that is calling.
Matty practically runs for the phone, making everyone laugh. Ross teasing loudly, "Absolutely whipped!"
"Damn right," Matty replies proudly as he gets a hold of his phone, and then leaves to the adjacent bathroom to answer. "Baby, hey!" He greets you loud and excitedly.
You can hear the smile on his voice, and it fully melts your heart. "Hiya Matty, how's your day been?"
"Can't lie baby it's not been great, but I feel a lot better now. Especially because now I get to hear your voice." He wishes he could say see your face, but you have oddly not facetimed him this time; though, he is not complaining at all.
He hears you cooing and his cheeks burn at the sound, "You're so cute, I missed you lots today."
"Never more than I miss you," He is quick to refute because hearing you through the phone is definitely making the void in his chest grow. He wants you there with him so badly and very selfishly.
"I beg to differ," You quip back. Matty hums funnily and it makes you giggle as he continues, "Let's agree to disagree because we'll be at it all night, how was your day baby?"
"Really good thanks, it was nice being all dressed up for it. The after party carpet is stunning this year, like a royal blue." And his face lights up when you add, "I felt like a bit of a princess in my dress."
He smiles when hearing that, and he's so excited to get the breath knocked out from his chest at the sight of you, "I'm sure you'll look like one. I can't wait to see you in it." But knowing you won't give him more details on your attire for tomorrow, he instead asks, "What are you up to now?"
"I'm in a taxi heading back to the hotel to watch SNL," You explain, but before he can ask why you're going back on your own, you continue, "Amelia's gone out with a few of the crew for some drinks but I wanted to get back, got scared I was gonna miss the start of it."
He isn't fond of you missing out on some fun to watch a shit comedy show that will only have them on for a total of eight minutes. So he lets you know just that, "Baby you should go out. It's American drivel, and you've heard the songs a hundred times before."
"I'm watching it Matty, I'm not missing seeing you on TV." You say seriously, but Matty can hear your smile as he listens to you all but coo, "It's not every day you get to see your boyfriend on TV." The tone you use to say that makes him chuckle lightly.
"That's cute but I know you're watching for Ross," Matty jokes and he's delighted when he hears your snort of laughter followed quickly by a giggle.
You sigh happily, "You know me so well." And in your head, you can clearly see him shrugging with a smug look on his face when he replies, "I try."
"Yeah, I know you do." You grin, your tongue swiping over your top lip as if to try and hide just how much this man makes you smile and feel all gooey inside.Â
Just as you're realising you have absolutely no need to keep your smile to yourself, your call is unfortunately interrupted by another knock on the greenroom door. Matty opens the bathroom door and stands in the doorway to keep in check with what's happening. You hear the commotion on Matty's end of the phone, somebody scrambling to let someone in, and once they do, you don't quite hear what's said now the room has gone quiet but from the mere reaction once the chatter starts again, it's easy to tell they were just called to set.
Matty sighs looking at his watch seeing that it's now 11:46pm and he's just beyond gutted he won't get a chance to speak to you for longer. He's disappointed to say the least and you can tell in his tone when he says, "They're calling us to go baby, I'm sorry." Matty takes a seat on the leather sofa quickly, using his shoulder to hold the phone to his ear so he can multi-task and put his shoes on as you finish up your conversation.Â
"Why are you sorry?" You laugh a little, "You should be excited. In fact, you best be excited because I don't want to see you half-hearting it on TV, Matty."
"You really are my toughest critic." Matty says as the room starts buzzing around him with everyone getting their stuff together. But even as he has his shoes on ready to go, he makes no effort to move.
The singer stays seated, nodding and holding his finger up to people trying to make him get a move on, but he's not shortening the already limited time he has talking to you for the sake of an extra minute of a producer telling him what to do. And he's glad he didn't just end the call because he gets to hear your giggle through the phone and he can picture you nodding in your taxi as you say, "Well of course, I can't have you ruining my reputation... I need America to be swooning at my boyfriend's stunning voice."
"Don't forget my life changing good looks." Matty can't help but sarcastically add.
"Oh, I could never." Your boyfriend can tell that you're grinning as you say that, but you do get a touch serious when you continue, "Have the best time okay, and I'll be watching every minute, so I want you to know that I'm there with you every second of the way."
"Thank you, needed that... and to hear your voice again before doing this." Matty's sure his heart just grew in size at your words. He's positively obsessed with you, and he can't wait for the night to be over so he can be another day closer to having you back by his side.
"Miss you so much baby." Your boyfriend tells you and he once again gets the urge to just let those three words slip from his lips.
Needless to say, you're in the exact same predicament, wanting so much to express your love for him but stopping yourself is almost painful. "I miss you too baby..." Is what you settle for, but Matty can hear exactly what you mean when you softly whisper, "Obsessed with you." like it pains you to not say what you actually wish to.
A smile lights up your boyfriend's face hearing those words though, and he gently repeats them back to you, "Obsessed with you too."
You hear your boyfriend's name get called then, and a quick, "I'm coming." falling from his lips, so you know it's really time for him to go. So you manage to quickly add, "Dance for me baby."
"Promise," Matty grins, "I'll call you after the show."
"Can't wait." You smile, and just as you're both about to bid each other farewell, another question falls from your lips, almost in a panic, "Wait, you didn't slick your hair back, did you?"
Your boyfriend lets out a loud laugh at that, knowing by now just how important his hair is to you. But instead of answering you, he leaves you with, "Guess you'll just have to wait and see."
Almost offended he won't tell you, you're about to scold him, "Matty." but he doesn't leave you the chance to. "Bye baby." Matty giggles, and he only puts the phone down once he hears you laugh again and say your own, "Byeeee."
When everyone makes it to set, the producer gives everyone another overview of how the night will go and the schedule that needs to be stuck to. The band can't help but be thankful that they aren't doing the sketches too because it means a much simpler night for them, with only two songs to play, one at 20 mins into the show and the other at 40 minutes.
The show begins without a hitch, Jenna Ortega completing her monologue without any hiccups and it lands well with the audience so Matty thinks that the writers should be proud of themselves for doing their job correctly. The sketches also seem to go okay and before he even knows it, Matty is being ushered onto the stage to take their places and get their instruments all ready.
He can feel the audience watching wait for the adverts to finish so they can begin and he gears himself up as he would before every show. A few playful words with the other boys, a few bounces on the spot and Matty's ready and in the right zone to entertain. He has to deliver for you, put on a show for you that will make you want to call him as soon as he can get back to his phone.
Thinking about your reaction makes him feel goofy and playful, like he wants to dance enough that he'll have you giggling for an hour about it on FaceTime. Matty can't help but smile at the mere thought of seeing and hearing you so happy, so to please only you that little bit more he twists a few strands of his hair around his finger so his curls really are on show for you, and he hopes you'll be happy with the result.
Before he can do anything else, the runners all start scrambling back behind the camera, the producers ensuring Jenna is in the correct spot to introduce them and the lights are lowered as he and the band take their position. There's the ten second countdown back from the adverts and then after hearing the actress say, "Ladies and gentlemen, The 1975." the song begins.
The familiar guitar riff fills the room, and the singer falls into his performance easily. The joy the music fills him with shows on his face and he can feel that the energy lifts in the room, and he feels lighter when he sees the smiles on people's faces as he looks around the small audience in front of him.
He can see fans in their merch, ones he recognises and new faces he doesn't but most of all he's just feeling the music and trying to be as flamboyant and as playful as possible as you are still in the forefront of his mind. He's playful as he sings, changing his voice to make this performance that little bit different from the other times he's sang I'm In Love With You on the tours, and he's doing it because you're all he has in mind. How can Matty not be happy and dance around whilst he sings a song about being in love when he knows the woman he's madly in love with is watching?
When the song reaches the first chorus Matty can't help but notice movement in the top right hand corner of the room, and he almost frowns seeing what the open door reveals. The singer looks to the top row of the seats facing them, and sees his Mum and her husband wondering in late but they are dancing as he sings the song which almost makes him chuckle. They stay where they are though and make no effort to find their seat and Matty can't think why but he tries to pay less attention to them and focus on performing.
Playful is the only way the singer could describe how he's performing, and ultimately feeling in this moment. He's putting on his show for you, as promised and he hopes you're loving every second as he's well aware how much him performing affects you and makes you happy. And there's nothing more that Matty ever wants to do than be the cause of your happiness.
Just thinking about your reaction when he comes to LA to surprise you in the morning, he absolutely cannot wait for. He's dying to feel you in his arms again, to feel your kisses on his skin, the thought absolutely electrifies him. This hour of his life can't go quick enough, and as soon as he's performed Oh Caroline later he's running back to the green room to grab his shit and then he'll be on the plane before he knows it. And considering the singer hates flying, he's never been so excited to fly across a country in his life.
The top right corner of the room catches the singer's eye again just as the door opens again revealing Mark stepping into the room. Matty has to hold back a frown seeing his security guard walk into the room considering he was meant to be on the toilet back at the hotel. Still confused, he lets his eyes linger on his Mum now saying a quick hello to Mark, but it's when the singer notices that his security is holding the door open for someone. And when that someone walks in, Matty almost stops breathing.
You are the person that walks out through the door, you're there in your jeans and your Drive Like I Do hoodie, tote bag filled to the brim on your shoulder and you all but throw it to the floor, your bright eyes never leaving the band you start singing along to the second chorus. Matty can't help the giggle that falls from his lips as he sings, and he has to bat away the tears that threaten to spring to his eyes.
His heart is thundering seeing that it's really you there in front of him, singing the words to his own song back to him. You're here, in New York, when you should be thousands of miles away. You're here, dancing with his Mum, supporting him, smiling and blowing kisses at him.
Matty's heart can't take much more, so he just leaves it all in his performance, and knowing the bridge (your favourite bit of the song) is about to come up, Matty decides to push himself. The one thing the producers told him was no swearing in the song, which considering the show airs after 12am seems really fucking pathetic but thankfully Matty remembers and flicks his face away from the microphone as the words he usually sing start to come out.
His eyes focus on you, giggling at the way his curls land on his face, but Matty can't stop himself from doing what he's about to. As he sings, "It's like one, two, yeah. I'm in love with you." on the you Matty changes to falsetto and at the same time he points up to the love of his life who is dancing along and singing the lyrics right back at him.
The singer sees you grinning and you hug yourself for a second, your hand going over your heart before you lift that hand to your lips and blow a kiss down to him. It's needless to say the tingles Matty can feel throughout his body at that moment is nothing to do with the adrenaline rush of singing live. It's all you, and all of the emotions you evoke in his body waking back up now you're in front of him again making him feel like he's floating on air.
The rest of the song goes by in a blur, him falling in step with Adam and Ross as they simultaneously sway side to side to the beat of the song. At one point he turns around to George to keep in time with the music but Matty only does that so the cameras can't see just how stupidly big his smile has got. Making eye contact with his best friend doesn't even ground him again though because George has a smile on his face too, along with a knowing grin.
When Matty raises his eyebrows slightly, the drummer easily picks up on the silent question of, You knew she was coming? And from the the casual little shrug and smile from the drummer, the singer knows his best friend well enough to hear the smug, Of course I fucking did. Deciding that he would deal with his best mate's little betrayal later, Matty just shakes his head faking disapproval and turns himself back around towards the cameras and audience, but his gaze can't help but find its way up to you once more as the outro wraps up.
The singer tries to hold himself together, and not seem jittery or eager to leave the stage as he takes in the audience's applause and he manages to tear his eyes from you to smile and graciously accept the cheers for his band. The 5 seconds in which he takes a short bow seems to drag on for half a lifetime when all he wants to do is rid himself of his guitar and wrap his arms around you, but the calm and collected facade changes as soon as he hears, "And we're off air."
Turning quickly to put his guitar down, Matty gives a quick thumbs up to Polly and Jamie before nodding to the rest of the band. But before they can even smile back at him, Matty turns and gives the audience another wave before he jogs off stage towards the double fire exit door knowing he'd find his way to you. And the singer is certain that this is the only time that he's ever been thankful that Americans have adverts every five minutes because he's never moved faster in his life.
And suddenly he's so grateful he's been stuck in this studio for a week, because he knows these corridors like the back of his hand at this point. Yes, he's aware he must look like a mad man, running through the halls in a suit like he's a btec James Bond, but nothing and no one will keep him from finding you in the next minute.
Your boyfriend is so glad that you seem to be on the same wavelength as him because when Matty turns his next corner, he sees you exit from the door he saw you enter when he was on stage. He genuinely thinks his heart skips a beat when your eyes meet, never ever have you looked so angelic than right now.
Despite just being in mundane clothes, you look like you're absolutely glowing. The smile on your gorgeous face is huge and the way you start sprinting towards him is enough confirmation that you're just as down bad for him as he is of you. And the way you clash together like bullets finally hitting their intended targets takes the breath from you both, but the momentum and adrenaline has Matty having to pick you up to spin you so you can both slow down.
There's a small giggle that slips from your lips as your arms tighten around Matty's neck which almost has the man's knees giving out, he's missed the sound of that laugh in his ear so very much. His hold around your waist only tightens as he slows his spinning as you press excited kisses to his neck as you continue to hug him until your feet hit the floor again.
It's almost like Matty's in a daze when he releases you just enough so you can each pull back and see each other's faces properly. He can see the shine in your eyes much like you can see the same in his when he cups both sides of your face and asks in utter shock and disbelief, "What are you doing here?!"
The smile that brightens your stunning face even more has Matty's heart almost bursting from his chest. Your hand comes to rest over one of his that covers your cheek as you say, "I told you, I couldn't miss this."
"Baby." Matty sighs in joy, and he doesn't have it in him to stop himself from quickly pressing his lips to yours. The peck is only short because he can't stop himself from saying, "I can't believe you're here."
You giggle again at that, your own heart beating out of your chest entirely at the fact you're back in the arms of the man you love. Deciding you need to steal another peck from those pretty lips of his, you quickly do so before you explain, "I was meant to be here so much earlier but the flight got delayed."
You trap Matty into another crushing hug when you as you elaborate, "Was supposed to be at the meal earlier, but clearly it wasn't meant to be."
As gutting as that news is, Matty can't bring himself to care that the initial plans for the day didn't go as planned. He believes that showing up how you just did made the surprise so much better because he had absolutely no inkling that you'd planned this. Not when you have the biggest gig of your life in less than 24 hours... Wait.Â
"But what about the dress rehearsal?" Matty starts to panic, pulling back from the hug so he can look at your face as he realises what you're putting at risk by being here in front of him, "Baby, what about the Oscars?"
"Dress rehearsal was this morning," You put his mind at ease and explain, "It's all done and there was nothing to do for the rest of the day or tomorrow until we have to watch the awards in the evening." You chuckle as you tell him, "I've been trying to get on a flight all afternoon."
"I can't believe you've flown to New York for this shit show when it's the biggest day of your life tomorrow." Matty can't help but run a hand through his hair, his other one still on your waist as he can't let you go at all. "God baby, you're so perfect but so silly at the same time."
Shrugging as you laugh and nod, accepting the truth as it slips from his lips but you have no regrets. Being back in his arms is a dream come true. "I just couldn't miss this." You tell him as you bury your head into his neck again, hugging him tightly. You're sure at this point you could get some sort of high just from inhaling his aftershave, it might be your favourite scent ever. Squeezing him tightly you admit, "And I missed you so much."
"I missed you more," Matty promises as he kisses the side of your head as he hugs you back.
If there was any doubt in either of your minds that you were each other's soulmates, this would have confirmed it. This moment of just utter euphoria from being back in each other's arms, but an overwhelming sense of peace washes through you also. You imagine this is the closest you'll get to heaven on earth, and you're so lucky you've found it.
Pulling back from the hug, you look into those gorgeous brown eyes as you say, "Impossi-" but your words are taken from you when your boyfriend's lips find your own again. This time it's not rushed, if anything, it's entirely savoured. Matty gently rests his index finger under your chin and tilts your head up slightly so he has you exactly where he wants you and you're happy to give in completely.
He kisses you like he can't get enough, his hold so tight like you might disappear and you're certain you fall even further in love with him in this moment. Matty's hums against your lips as you let your hand slide up into the back of his curly hair. You can't help but grab ahold of his tie with your other hand to keep him from going anywhere. Something that makes Matty smile into the kiss and subsequently you do as well but you don't let him get away. Your lips find each other over and over, both releasing little pleased hums here and there just to further show how much you love the sensation.
You've missed this. You've missed how at home you feel in his arms, and how his kisses make you feel like the world has ignited around you. The way your heart yearns to be close to his says it all, you couldn't be apart for a week without needing to experience him again.
Your kiss turns into a few longer ones, which eventually shifts to the both of you giggling as you steal pecks from one another. Eventually your forehead rests against his and your gorgeous boyfriend gives you a soft Eskimo kiss which makes your heart stutter. A gentle giggle leaves your lips, you don't even hesitate with what you're about to declare, "I-"
"Matty!" A yell from down the corridor briefly interrupts the moment, and you don't have to look to know it's George.
This may be the first and only time you marginally dislike George Daniel for stealing the moment you were about to tell Matty that you love him. Equally though, when it happens you want it to be grander than in a random back corridor in a studio. But emotions are getting the better of you, and you feel it so so deeply now, you don't want to keep it to yourself for much longer.
Your boyfriend turns towards his best mate and hugs you into his chest as the both of you look down the corridor. The gentle giant waves at you with a smile on his lips but doesn't come any closer, instead he just tells Matty, "They need us to go over something really quickly in the green room."
"Give me two minutes G." Your boyfriend says as he holds you that bit tighter.
George nods, and then his eyes move to you and his smile gets that bit bigger as he says, "Good to see you Y/N/N."
"And you George." You grin, the smile you share is a knowing one, because he was the one you told first that you were making the trip over.Â
The drummer turns on his heel, briefly nodding to Matty in confirmation of those two minutes he gave him. And your boyfriend certainly makes the most of those two minutes. Arms wrap tighter around your waist and before you even realise you're hoisted into the air and span around which makes a loud giggle fall from your lips, and the joy that's on Matty's face has you spellbound. Stealing a few more kisses from the curly haired brunette, you don't want to let him go just yet so you make the most of every second.
When your feet return to the ground, you tell Matty that you're going to make the most of being at SNL and head into the studio again to finish watching the sketches with Denise and Lincoln. Matty nods, silently understanding that you don't want to feel in the way by going back to the green room with him when there's going to be a meeting of sorts, and that you may as well make the most of being here by seeing the show.
But your boyfriend has to ask, "How long has my Mum known?"
"Bless your Mum has been sorting everything out for me," You chuckle, "I told George but when he said that your Mum was coming I started liaising with her so you didn't get suspicious of George."
Matty pulls a face which screams betrayal as he asks you, "Who else has been hiding things from me? George, me Mum...You're all sneaky."
"Mark wasn't on the shitter," You laugh before divulging, "He was getting me from the airport." Overhearing that conversation in the car made you giggle, it was an effort not to tell him earlier when you were on the phone faking you were on the way back to your hotel in a taxi. You're just glad the roads here are as busy as the ones in LA so the background noise didn't give you away.
Matty scoffs at the news and shakes his head, "I'm surrounded by snakes." You just hum and nod before you lean in to kiss him once more. And you're certain your two minutes have long since passed when you eventually bid each other a brief goodbye and you head back into the studio as silently as you can.
The show seemed to pass by in a flash, the cringe of the sketches weren't as bad as when you were in the room watching them compared to when watching on TV so you found yourself having fun. But even more so when you got to dance with Denise again when the band came back out and performed Oh Caroline.
The gorgeous song was over before you knew it and you knew that there were only a few more sketches before the end of the show, so you were making the most of them until someone familiar took the free seat beside you. Before you can even congratulate him on a good show he's already cupped your face and leant in to kiss you cheek which just makes it so your smile is a permanent fixture upon your face. Matty scoots his chair as close to yours as humanly possible and he crosses his legs as he takes your hand and intertwines your fingers.
The sketches aren't as captivating as the way Matty's thumb strokes the back of your hand, you just end up watching him. You've missed the tiny things about him, like how he bounces his foot slightly as he watches the show, his small tell that he's not quite as comfortable as he makes out to be. You've missed the way he twists that front curl around his finger again absentmindedly as the world passes him by. You've missed everything about the gorgeous man beside you, but mostly, the overwhelming feeling of home he brings you. You lean your head down on his shoulder and smile brightly as you take a deep breath. There's no place you'd rather be than by this man's side, and you squeeze his hand a little to try and somehow silently convey that.
Feeling a gentle kiss being placed on top of your head adds to it even more, and when he leans his head down against yours you hear Matty whisper, just loud enough for you to hear over the sketch, "I'm so glad you're here."
Your heart flutters at that but even more so when he picks up your adjoined hands and kisses the back of yours. God, you love him so much. You both happy lose yourselves in each other's presence as you watch possibly the only decent sketch on this programme. The Weekend Update has both you and Matty in stitches laughing and you find that the laughter lingers even when they go into an advert break for the millionth time this evening.
A yawn is the reason your laughter stops which Matty pouts at and gently smiles, "You tired Baby?"
Nodding in confirmation, you also decide to tell him, "I'm gonna have to get the earliest flight in the morning. I need to be back in LA at the earliest opportunity, just to ease my mind." Because God only knows how you've thought about every way in which you might not get back to LA on time. But you're looking on the positive side, you're going to be fine and you'll get back with plenty of time to spare.
"I got you covered Baby," Matty grins, and he gives your hand another squeeze, "I was flying out right after this anyway."
Mark quickly taps your boyfriend on your shoulder to tell him he's needed back on set for the closing part of the show and you receive the loveliest kiss on the cheek before your boyfriend heads backstage. Five minutes later you're happily whooping and cheering for your favourite band as everyone is on set closing up the show.
And as soon as wrap is called, Denise and Lincoln show you the way back towards the lads greenroom and you're greeted with big smiles by everyone. Polly hugs you first, followed by Adam, Jamie, and George. But as Matty attempts to give you another hug, Ross swoops in and hugs you, taking you off your feet as he spins you around a little. He as you laughing in his arms as you hug him back, but the sheer surprise of it has you dizzy once your feet return to the ground.
Giggling, you tell him, "Missed you guys." And you look around them with nothing but love in your heart. They truly feel like a second family even after such a short amount of time. You can't believe that you first met these people just a handful of months ago, and now they aren't just your favourite musicians, they are actually your friends. And one is your boyfriend... You truly can't believe your luck.
"Never more than we miss you." Ross hugs you into his chest and you giggle at that.
Even more so when you see Matty is now perching on the arm of the settee and he's watching you and the bassist like a hawk, knowing his mate is trying to keep you all to himself to get under his skin. You feed into it though by squeezing Ross' waist tighter as you counter, "You'd be surprised, I've had years of longing for you all don't forget."
"Don't we know it." Matty chuckles and the lads and Denise laugh.
But Ross briefly lets you go so he can look down at you and he holds your shoulders as he grins, "And we all know I was your favourite."
Your smile matches his as you all but giggle, "Only because Matty was with Flo at the time." The room erupts in laughter then and the bassist quickly leans down and kisses your cheek before you go and take the seat beside where Matty is perching. Your boyfriend's own smile lingers for a while before he slides himself down into your lap and cuddles himself against you.
Both of you being entirely soppy, resting your head against each other, your arm moving over his waist as he presses his kisses to your temple, then cheek, then your lips. And you savour them all, stealing another kiss from those pillowy lips of his until you pull away feeling a little self conscious as there are way too many eyes in this room.
It's all a bit chaotic by the time everyone packs their stuff up. And by the time you're all ready to leave the room it's close to 2:30am. Denise and Lincoln wished you well before heading back to their hotel about 45 minutes ago and you're now ready to do the same, feeling completely exhausted after a long day. Matty smiles at you when you release a tired yawn, and he throws his arm around your shoulder to pull you into his body as he begins to drag his suitcase along with you towards the green room door. Everyone is loitering with their cases though so the both of you pause, waiting for the others to get their shit together.
It seems that everyone around you is so manic, that your quiet conversation goes relatively unheard. Matty turns towards you and smiles, "Let's go to the airport."
"What?" Your eyes go a little wide, "Like right now?"
"Right now." Matty nods with a grin. You shake your head a little, mostly confused because, "There aren't any planes to LA at this time, Matty."
"There are," He chuckles, "If you have a private one, and thankfully I have a friend who's not using his right now."
Your jaw falls open, and Matty can't help but glance at those pretty lips of yours. It takes everything in him not to kiss them. "Matty, we can't." You shake your head. No way can you impose like that. Taking a private jet just to benefit yourself, it's something from a story, not something you can actually do.
"We can and we are doing," Your boyfriend nods and smiles. And you know by the way he's looking at you that he's not taking no for an answer. You smile sweetly at him. Afterwards, you notice his eyes dart around the room, "Come on, where's your case?"
"Didn't bring a case." You shake your head, just patting the tote that's on your shoulder. "Didn't think there'd be much point when we haven't seen each other in over a week."
A cheeky knowing smirk tugs at your lips as you whisper, "Pyjamas wouldn't be needed, would they?" Matty's eyes darken a little at that, looking at you like he could devour you at any given second now. But he just lets his arm slip around your waist, "Oh, I'm going to be such a bad friend."
"What?" You frown, asking curiously, "Why?" Before Matty can respond, the room gets loud again as everyone starts moving into the hallway. Shouts about an afterparty in a different hotel are mentioned, everyone shouting who's coming and who's driving with who takes your attention as you turn to face the door again.
But Matty wraps his arms around your waist from behind you, pulling you back into his chest. Your heart thuds at the feeling but what makes it skip a beat is when you feel his smirk against your ear as he whispers, "I'm going to shag you on the plane."
~*~*~*~ Oscars Day ~*~*~*~
You had gone to a big hotel suite to get ready for the Oscars Vanity Fair After Party with Amelia, watching the red carpet as you got your makeup and hair done. It felt so odd to be pampered while feeling so incredibly nervous inside, because the drag of the straightener along your hair kept making your eyelids flutter shut, but your stomach kept doing somersaults and making you nauseous.
It kept making you nostalgic to look to your side and see Amelia getting ready next to you, sipping a Diet Coke as you both watched the red carpet like you have been doing together for years. This time though you're both being glammed up as you do so, about to meet those in attendance, this time just on the other carpet, maybe next year you'll be lucky enough to do the preshow one.
Thankfully you did sleep on the plane back to LA, so your make up artist didn't tell you off for bags under your eyes. And considering you spent the night and day beside Matty, you felt so well rested and happy that up until getting here you weren't too nervous. But now the clock is counting down and the anxiousness has crept back in.
It takes the two hours of the red carpet and a little into the ceremony for you and Amelia to be fully ready and prepared for the night. Once you're ready to be taken over to the Vanity Fair carpet, you have just under half an hour going around the massive hotel suite to take loads of pictures while you listen to the important stuff happening in the background in case any new questions could be asked to your guests on the carpet.
When you step out of the suite, the door closing behind you kick-starts a new round of nerves, making you grab your best friend's hand tightly. Amelia looks at you and you screech in unison as you head to the lifts. You have no idea how you're gonna keep from shaking like a wet dog on the actual carpet, but you hope that you manage to settle in time.
When the lift doors open at the lobby, you realise you had completely forgotten about a certain someone waiting for you there. Matty's eyes are gleaming when they catch you walking his way. He can't help but think that you look so fucking unreal, and his hand comes over his chest as if clutching it would stop it from beating erratically.
Your boyfriend briefly allows himself to look at Amelia, seeing that she's looking lovely in a sleek black dress with a curved neckline trailing up her shoulder to cover one of her arms. But regardless of your best friend's beauty, Matty is absolutely spellbound by yours.
You're walking towards him in a sparkly rouge v-neck dress which accentuates all of your stunning features. The neckline shows off your boobs in the most drool worthy way, it takes effort for Matty's eyes not to linger for too long. Not to mention the way you just look like a Disney princess, looking as gorgeous as ever, it's almost otherworldly. Even your skin has a sparkle to it.
"Oh my..." You hear him mutter as you finally reach him, but his arm snakes around your waist and pulls you in to kiss you. "Lipstick!" You manage to mumble against his lips, and when he pulls back, you laugh as you wipe the remnants of mauve off his lips.
Matty doesn't let go of you, nor stop giving you compliments the whole way to the venue. He's clutching you so tightly, you're blushing the entire time. Amelia keeps giggling and pointing out how down bad he is for you, to which he always proudly replies, "Fuck yes, I am."
When you get to the venue it's not long before showtime, so you leave the little backstage dressing room Vanity Fair gave you fairly quickly, but it feels almost painful to leave Matty behind. Before leaving though, you give your boyfriend a kiss (which you had been refusing all the way there for the sake of your lipstick), and he promises he will be all dressed up and ready for you by the time you're back.
You're a little jealous he can stay in his comfies for a bit longer than you, but the show must go on. So with lots of words of encouragement, Matty bids both you and your best friend good luck and goodbye before you head over to the corner of the iconic carpet Vanity Fair has set up for you.
You're so nervous seeing all the new faces walk past and up to you, but it's also just so much fun seeing familiar faces like Pedro Pascal and Sabrina Carpenter. There is a bit of pressure on you and your best friend since these interviews are happening on a TikTok live, but having her doing it with you makes it so much easier. You are just bouncing off each other, asking random and funny questions to throw your guests off and get good comedic moments.
Your faces light up when you and Amelia stop your chat once you see Paul Mescal from afar bowing to the two of you. You wave him over eagerly and he excuses his way over to you, grabbing the mic off a staff member helping your production, and stopping right in front of you.
Amelia chuckles, immediately pointing out Paul's actions, "I saw you bowing to us."
"From up there," Paul snorts at himself. You put on your best smirk and act smug as you reply, "Yeah, and we thought: thank you."
"You're welcome." Says the gorgeous man. He certainly looks the part of the heartthrob tonight. The black trousers with the white blazer and red flower pinned to his lapel. Since the ceremony has finished though he's swapped the shirt and bow tie for a white vest, making for a more casual look, but still very dashing.
Amelia bows to him as she says, "My king." You laugh to yourself and follow Amelia's bow, and just about you're standing back straight, Paul reciprocates with another bow, "My queens." You truly don't know how the both of you fight that flustered blush from your faces. Yeah, you may be taken, but you're only human.
"So what mood are you in? Are you in a party mood?" Amelia asks Paul, going straight back into interviewer mode. Paul thinks about his answer for a second, "I'm in a... Yeah, I think I'm in a party mood."
Amelia quirks, "Yeah?" And you follow with a silly question that you thought would be interesting for tonight, "Have you ever danced on a table?" Paul shakes his head but firmly states, "I'm gonna do that tonight." You and your best friend approve in unison, "Yeah!"
"I'm gonna dance on a table tonight."
Amelia is satisfied with Paul's decision so she continues onto another question, "Have you ever been-" But Paul cuts her inquiry short to put forward one of his own, "Are there any tables in there?"
You shrug and honestly say, "Dunno, we've never been." Your bluntness makes you all snort at the same time, enjoying your novelty in these types of events all together.
Amelia waves it off, like she's got the situation under control and swiftly says, "We'll get a table for you." Mimicking talking to someone on some earbud intercom, you say, "Excuse me, can we please get a table for Paul Mescal to dance on?"
Paul finds himself amused at you two, playing onto your joke with a cheeky grin, "Quick. Pronto." You click your tongue, "We've got you covered, Paul."
"You're here with your whole family right?" Amelia inquires after you saw his little sister Nell going in earlier. Paul nods, turning to look ahead at the carpet, "Yeah, I sent them in. They're in at the party and I'm waiting for-"
Amelia cuts in, playing into his presence with you rather than with his family, "And you had to come chat to us, obviously." He plays into it naturally, and it makes you smile, "I was like, I've got to do something really important. I've gotta chat to Amelia and Y/N."
You hum as you nod, "Yeah, it's really, really important." Amelia genuinely replies with, "We actually love chatting to you every time." And you love seeing Paul brighten up and reciprocate, "I love chatting to yous!"
"It's great," You grin.
Amelia, with her sudden changes of conversation as per usual, asks, "Do you identify as a heartthrob?"
"Do I?" Paul chuckles at the complete turn of direction in the chat, "Ermmmm... No, I don't identify as a heartthrob." You gasp, "You don't?" Amelia states quickly, "Well, we think you are."
"That's very nice of you to say," Paul replies rather shyly. And just for his sake, knowing that it will send him back into his shell if you two keep poking on his heartthrob states, Amelia goes, "Anyway, you've gotta go."
You have to bite your tongue not to burst out laughing. Even more so when Paul laughs but nods in agreement, "I've gotta go." You add to the joke, "You've reeeally gotta go."
"You're cool," Paul says wholeheartedly. You and your best friend quickly say the same back to him, because you truly believe it and he's one of your favourites, "You're cool."
Paul bids you farewell, "See ya!"
"Bye!" You wave with a big smile. Amelia quips before the Irish lad can leave, "I'll see you on the dancefloor."
"See you on the dancefloor," Paul says, and goes back to your early joke by adding, "On a table." You laugh, nodding in confirmation, "On a table, yup."
It's hard to wipe the smile that breaks on your face after that chat. Paul is one of the people you adore and you're so grateful to have met through your work, you love the friendship he has with you and Amelia, and it is a plus that he is such great friends with your boyfriend.
The thought of Matty makes you smile harder, becoming internally giddy at the prospect of finishing this interview section and finally getting to enjoy such a monumental night with the man that keeps your heart beating out of your chest.
Matty has been watching the interview on TikTok with a grin on his face and pride swelling his chest in the little backstage room you had been getting ready in earlier. Your boyfriend had been enjoying every bit of the interviews and laughing to himself like a fool, swooning over how beautiful you look, how much he loves seeing you smile and laugh, and just so incredibly ecstatic that you have gotten to this place in your career. He believes you deserve the entire universe, and he is so glad that you and Amelia are both getting the recognition you have always deserved.
Your boyfriend can see how happy you are at the moment, but it is perhaps just how bright your smile is that gives the next person to walk up to you the courage to be so upfront, and it makes Matty grow irate in a matter of seconds.
"Oh camera!" You point out in a gasp when an actor in a dark grey suit walks up to you, taking a disposable film camera from his pocket and turning it on. Both of you recognise the actor immediately. He's not an A-lister by any means but you've seen him in a few films so you're excited to meet someone new to bounce off. But almost immediately you know exactly what sort of man this one will turn out to be.
You hear his low hum against the mic before he says, "Yeah, pose for me."
Amelia and you pose for the camera, giving your best smiles and the flash blinds you slightly so you faintly see the lad pocketing it before properly grabbing the mic again. A smirk grows on the lad's face as he points out, "Taking pictures of the best moments tonight."
You want to giggle, and can't miss the chance to tease, "Oh, so we're a highlight then?"Â
If he'd have just agreed with you and looked at your both genuinely as he said it, you may have found this interview very different. But instead, you absolutely don't miss the way that his eyes linger way too long on your breasts before his eyes finally reach yours. Accompanied by a wink which is aimed directly at you, he replies, "You definitely are, love."
From your dressing room, that look and comment earns Matty's first scoff of the night, and though he shouldn't, he hates the fact that you look a little flustered as you reply with a shy, "Oh, okay."
But what the camera isn't showing is that you're not flustered because this man is flirting with you. You're flustered because you feel uncomfortable being objectified so openly like that, and on camera too. Not to mention, you can keep spotting telltale signs that the actor in front of you is extremely drunk.
Before Amelia can come up with a way to save you, the lad (very stupidly if you were to ask Matty) questions, "What are yous doing?"
One of your brow quirks at the nature of the question, before you can properly think about it, you just repeat his question almost mockingly, "What are we doing?" Amelia almost instantly goes, "Interviewing you."
The actor nods, "Right." swaying slightly on his feet. You almost want to huff because he is giving you nothing, so you go ahead and fire him a bunch of questions hoping to wrap this interview soon, "So what are you doing in there? Where are you going? Dancefloor, crying in the bathroom...?"
But you're not counting on him continuing with his heavy flirting. He takes a step towards you, grabbing your hand and squeezing it as he leans in a little to smoulder at you, "I'm going wherever you're going."
Whiskey. Whiskey is what this man in front of you has been drinking, and you know because it's all you can smell on his breath. It takes an extraordinary amount of effort not to gag in front of him or live on the show. You try to turn him down without being so obvious, while also trying to keep up with your usual awkwardly flirty persona. You squeeze his hand before gently slipping it free so you can ask, wide eyed, "Oh, so you're dancing?"
The man's eyes wonder to your chest again and you feel a little ill as you can't help the sensation of being vulnerable. Almost like you can't stop this from happening without seeming like an absolute cow in front of millions online. The last thing you want to cause is a scene, especially at an event like this. "If you save me a few dances, I will definitely join you," The smirk that tugs further on the corners of his lips makes you squirm in your place.
You should be glad to have not been a witness to Matty's second scoff of the night which was followed by an eye roll, and a hissed, "Silly prick."
You dismiss the actor gently and subtly again, "We'll see how the dancefloor looks when we go in." But he doesn't relent in the slightest, "Oh I bet you look good on the dancefloor."
It makes you chuckle sarcastically, and you're so glad you can roll your eyes at his antics this time, "Nice pun, Turner."
Elbowing you softly, Amelia reminds you to try to be merry and flirt, so to your boyfriend's and your own dismay, you smirk as you flick your hair and quip back, "I do actually look good on the dancefloor." You swear the actor's voice drops an octave when he says, "Can't wait to see that up close." and you don't miss the way his eyes fall to your body again and lingers before meeting your eyes again.Â
Hating that you're on a livestream and can't give Amelia a 'help me' glance is killing you, so you very awkwardly turn to your best friend and fully avoid the lad getting any ideas in his head by changing your own plans, "Think we're just gonna have some burgers actually."
"No dancing?" The actor tries again, smirk just glued to his face. Matty is fuming, wanting nothing more than to reach into the screen and slap that smirk off the guys face. He really isn't enjoying the fact that he won't stop staring at you, nor flirting with you. Not only that, but he also thinks the lad is a massive dickhead for fully ignoring Amelia next to you.
You shrug, languidly making eye contact again, "Depends who asks." He puffs his chest out as he says, "I'm asking."
Matty clutches his phone in a white knuckle grip.
Amelia quips into the conversation for what feels like the first time, "Which one of us are you asking?" But the actor doesn't even spare her a word, just intensely staring at you with fuck-me eyes that threaten to give you a bad case of the shivers.
Amelia shifts uncomfortably in her place, chuckling awkwardly before stating, "This might get a bit messy," knowing that your boyfriend is watching. Your very jealous and angry boyfriend who is very much tempted on going out to the carpet and decking the pretentious prick.
That need to break the actor's nose just peaks when he replies, "Hopefully."
You're at a loss for words, your mouth opening in shock. Amelia can only mutter a choked, "That's-" which gets lost in the wind for she has no clue what to actually say.
Luckily, the lad starts laughing loudly at your reactions, breaking the sudden awkward tension created and urging you to laugh with him just to leave the interview on a good spirited note. Amelia clears her throat and implicitly tells the lad it's time for him to go, "We saw some of your mates get in already, so we won't steal you any longer."
He gets the hint, but not with joy. His smirk falters and his shoulders fall, "Ah bummer." You give him the fakest smile as you say, "We'll see you inside." But it almost crumbles when he winks again and replies, "I'm really hoping you will."
Amelia tries to lighten the mood by joking about your plans, "Burger in hand." However, the actor is damn stubborn and continues to try and plan something with you, "We could have some burgers together, yeah." You stay quiet, letting Amelia take this one just so he knows that you're not even jokingly considering it, "Ooo, a picnic!"
When he looks at Amelia instead of you, your shoulders sag slightly in relief. Matty is seeing red though, he cannot fucking stand to see the lad's face any longer and even the harmless, "Sure, why not?" that he replies with, has the singer rolling his eyes and clenching his fists.
Amelia bids him farewell, "It was nice seeing you!"
"Likewise," he nods and waves as he returns the mic.
You smile big and bright, feeling finally free of your torment, "See ya'!"
And your boyfriend also feels relief starting to flood his system when the lad seems to turn away from you, but his anger is piqued yet again when the actor doesn't miss the chance of the goodbye to walk up far too close to you, hugging you by the waist and leaving a kiss on your cheek. Matty doesn't even note the fact that he does the same to say goodbye to Amelia, he's just furiously replaying in his head the way that his arms wrapped around you too easily and he was too slow and deliberate when planting his lips on the soft skin of your face.
What bothers him even more is the way you and Amelia giggle together once the lad is gone, as if you had enjoyed that. He doesn't want to keep on watching the livestream, and he has to remind himself that this is your job, but it doesn't make it any better.
It's ironic how that interview has made him feel just the exact way you're about to feel when you see who is about to walk into your little corner by the carpet. Dressed to the teeth in black, the woman in a high necked dress and wet look pixie cut steps in front of you.
"Halsey!" Amelia greets the singer all excitedly while you stand beside her trying your absolute best to put on your biggest smile and gather as much content as you can to appear as eager as your best friend.
But it is hard for you to formulate anything in your head that will allow you to make the interview good so you allow Amelia to take over for a little, that is until the woman unfortunately brings up the topic of dating. Halsey laughs a little as she looks between you both and says, "You've dated so many of my exes."
You hum, internally cringing but keeping a smile on your face. Thankfully, Amelia takes that one and says, "That is true. Wait, how many?"
"Erm..." Halsey trails off, cringing outwardly a little but making it playful by smiling, all while you feel like you've done something wrong. And you would hardly say two is 'so many'. You've only been on a chicken shop date with Matty and Yungblud.
Amelia realises her mistake and softly snorts, "Oh wait, okay, I know." To try not to seem too awkward about it, you chip in with a little joke that seems to also be the truth, "We all have the same type, love that."
"Yeah I know," Halsey widens her eyes to try and signify the awkwardness but at this point you can't quite tell if she's playing up to the fact the dates aren't real, or the fact that you're actually going out with Matty. The man she wrote many Tumblr blogs and poems about.
Amelia tries to lighten the situation by adding, "Damn, okay."
However, it is hard to keep it lighthearted when the singer says, "I'm sorry for you." The way she said it, and how she looked at you as she did made your stomach drop, so it is hard to reply with anything right away. It's harder to keep the smile on your face when she shows her true colours by saying shit like that as well.
"Yeah." Amelia says a little awkwardly at the same time as you go the other way and half laugh as you try to maintain your smile, "Oh, I'm quite alright."
"Maybe that's where we're going wrong somewhere on our chicken shop dates, me especially, is because we have the same type." Amelia keeps things jokey and playful as you try to get back into the swing of it after the shock the comment gave you.
"Imma give you some like real advice," she starts like she's about to give you two a TedTalk, "Yeah, that is where you're going wrong. Don't follow in my footsteps." She might see the way you can't hold your face from growing stoic and the quirk of your brows as if challenging her to continue.
You have quirky remarks ready to defend yourself, your previous dates, and especially your boyfriend. But thankfully the woman in front of you isn't as brave as she initially believed she was. The singer backtracks, "I'm just kidding, everyone is wonderful," but you're sure you can hear sarcasm as she sighs, "Everyone's amazing."
Amelia takes over for you yet again and jokingly attempts to make it obvious your dates are fake, "Everyone is wonderful, but like maybe we should change our type? Would you say maybe, not musicians?"
The singer, thankfully, takes her eyes off you to look up as she thinks, "Erm, well it depends what you're pivoting to because if you're pivoting to actors... also the same."
Remaining professional, you pitch back into the conversation with an easy smile as you chuckle, "Maybe just someone who's not going to be here tonight." She nods, looking between you both and saying, "You should find an accountant."
Amelia brightens up, "An accountant. You know what, that would also be a really useful thing."
"Yeah." The singer confirms. You hum, smiling but playing up to the joke as you say, "Maybe more useful than a lot of boyfriends."
The singer agrees again, "No, for sure," but backtracks again and tells you and your best friend, "No, you don't even need a boyfriend, you just need a therapist."
You can't help but snort, "Okay, cool." It's funny because if she's being a cow on purpose, this makes her look like such a petty bitch for saying this to you. If she's genuinely doesn't realise what she's saying though, it just makes her fucking stupid.
"A therapist," Halsey says again.
"Yeah. No, I could have another therapist," Amelia comments, "I have one at the moment, but I could double up." Halsey laughs at that one before joking along with you, "One to date, one to talk to." You cock your head in consideration, brows furrowing as you give her comment a thought, "Maybe yeah, maybe one to date."
She covers her face with one hand as she laughs softly at herself, "God, I'm giving terrible advice right now." You don't know how you refrain from raising your eyebrows and nodding in agreement. Instead you just mirror your best friend laughing.
Amelia is far too nice when replying, "No, you're giving the best advice."
"What kind of mood are you in tonight?" You bring the interview back to the default questions for the night, "Are you in the mood to party?" She considers the question and cocks her head before replying, "Yeah, I think so. This is kinda like a circus in the best way."
You nod because she is not wrong, "Okay." And Amelia agrees on it too, "Yeah." It feels like the tension has settled for a second, and it thankfully feels like this is the end of her interview. But, of course, you were too early in thanking superior forces for her leaving so fast because your heart drops as soon as she goes on to ask something you had long forgotten about.
"What word do I say wrong by the way?" Her challenging smirk is big on her face, the rise of her brows annoying you because it feels patronising. You immediately know what she's referring to but your brows furrow and you muster your best confused face as you quip, "Pardon?"
You swear you hear her scoff softly, giving you a roll of her eyes that most people would see as a joke but it just irritates you more, before adding, "On your date, you said that I say a word wrong? Lilac, was it?"
It sounds like she knows exactly which word she says wrong, so you hold back the urge to massively roll your eyes. Especially when she says it wrong again. So you nod, and emphasise the right way to pronounce the word as you confirm, "Yeah, lilac."
Then she goes again saying it weirdly, "Lilac," and you have to bite your tongue not to laugh. You take a shallow breath to calm yourself down since you feel like she's fully playing with you, before explaining, "No, it's one word, say it all together."
But she says it just the same again, "Lilac." You release a long sigh and try your best to appear as friendly and comedic as possible as you openly admit your lack of patience and her lack of ability in just saying the damn word correctly, "Yeah, no. This is not going to work."
Amelia diverts Halsey's attention from you to her as she lets out a hearty laugh, one that the singer very fakely joins into. You have to laugh along as well, before your best friend finally saves your arse and bids Halsey farewell, letting you feel just a bit of relief by having the girl out of your sight. But it would be a lie to say that the little awkward moment had not just ruined your night. It's a little pathetic of you to have let her rile you up so much, but from the shit she's written about your boyfriend in the past and now this passive aggressive interaction just set the tone.
It could've gone the other way entirely and you both laughed at the situation of your actually going out with someone she did. But no, you were met with silent animosity, sly digs, and looks that could kill. And to make matters worse, you're more than likely going to bump into her again inside, which pisses you off further. It makes you seriously debate just going back to the hotel with Matty and falling asleep in his arms. But you will absolutely not let that snake win.
Thankfully, the last few interviews manage to lift your spirits, Sam Claflin being the last person to step into your little corner. And the absolute gem of a man has you gigging instantly.
"British!" Sam exclaims when hearing you and Amelia say hello to him and welcoming him into the carpet. You and Amelia laugh and repeat with the same enthusiasm, "British!"
Sam lets out a sigh of relief at the familiarity of the accent, "That's so nice!" Amelia chuckles and jokes, "When British people see each other, that's what they do, they go: British!"
You and the man in the classic tuxedo say at the same time, "British!" And the three of you continue with your chorus of "British," until the word starts feeling odd when rolling off your tongue.
You point it out with a funny look on your face, "Alright, that's starting to sound like an odd word now." After a little laugh and Sam agreeing, Amelia points out, "We've seen a lot of your castmates."
Sam raises his brows, and looks around a little before saying, "See, I haven't seen them yet! And this is what I'm excited about." Amelia nods and continues with her line of questioning, "Yeah, we've actually seen them. So will you all be on the dancefloor together, do you think tonight?"
But Sam shocks you with his answer, "I'm not much of a dancer." It's a little hard for you to believe that he wouldn't be good at dancing. This man in front of you is so talented in so many ways, you're willing to bet money he's actually a great dancer. "Are you not?!" You say instinctively with a shocked expression on your face.
Sam looks devastated to bring the horrible news, "I can't say that I am."Â
Amelia follows up with a sad, "Are you kidding?!" The actor shakes his head, "No. Yeah, ermm..." Amelia does bring back what you had seen when he was approaching you, "When you came over, just now, I thought you're definitely a dancer!"
"Oh, I did dance over!" Sam chuckles, nodding a bit. "Yeah!" You say enthusiastically. But he adds, "No. I uh, I definitely have the posture of a ballerina. But no, it's not for me." Amelia snorts, "A posture of a ballerina. I love that."
To change the topic, you ask, "Are you fan of a burger? There's In-N-Out burgers."
"I do love a burger." Sam nods and his face lights up when he asks, "There's In-N-Out burgers?" You just get the excitement on his face and eagerly nod, "Yes!"
Sam delivers yet more sad news to the audience when he confesses, "See, okay, I've only had In-N-Out once in my life." But this time, you get it because you could probably count the times you've had In-N-Out with one hand, "Oh yeah, because we're British."
Sam almost pouts as he says, "We don't have it." The faint sadness shows in Amelia's voice as she adds, "That's true, we can't really have it."
It is absolutely hilarious when Sam turns to the camera and points at it as he says, "So, if you're watching In-N-Out, bring it over, over the pond." You look at the camera and point as well as you emphasise, "Over the pond."
Sam hums and continues, "And introduce us, properly." Amelia nods like a child at the camera and mumbles, "Yes, please."
It's hard not to laugh when you turn to Sam and hide your sarcasm to ask, "Cos you've just been having, what? You've just been having Sunday roasts?" Sam chuckles at the question and nods, "Sunday roast."
Amelia says, "Fish and chips." The tone that the both of you use makes Sam laugh again, "Yeah. Oh, fish and chips."
Because it's your brand, you can't help but mention, "We've been having loads of nuggets." Sam hums, completely lost at the random mention of chicken nuggets, "Those are good too."
Amelia seems elated at his agreement and is chipper as she continues, "Right? Can never go wrong with some nuggets." Bless him, he must think you're not eating well if that has been the main course of your diet as of late, but you let him go with a big smile and an eager, "Well, thank you Sam!"
Amelia smiles brightly, "It's been a pleasure." He offers you a sweet smile and says, "Thank you to you both." You give him a tiny wave as he goes to hand back the mic, "Have a great time!"
While Amelia says, "Bye bye!" into her microphone. Hilariously, before he leaves, he salutes you as he says, "British!"
And you and Amelia cannot hold back from saluting him back as the both of you say "British!" Sam laughs as he walks away, heading to the photo section of the red carpet, leaving you and Amelia to finally wrap up the TikTok live.
"On that patriotic note, we're gonna say goodnight to you all," You start the closing dialogue of your interview section.
Amelia finishes your sentence with, "And go get ourselves some In-N-Out burgers!" Playing into your brand, once again, you quip, "You think they'd have chicken nuggets?" Amelia hums, considering that to be better than burgers, "Cross your fingers."
Turning back to look at the camera, you bid all your viewers goodnight, "Alright, thank you for watching guys!"
"This has been Amelia," Your best friend starts saying. You grin, "And Y/N, at the Vanity Fair Oscars After Party Red Carpet!" In unison, you say, "Bye!"
And just like that, the live is ended by the staff behind the cameras and you have officially survived your Oscars weekend.
This should make you so incredibly happy, ecstatic to have accomplished such a thing, and have been able to pull it off like you did, but your brain is cruel and all that flashes back to the forefront of your mind is Halsey's interview. You try to shoo away the way it made you feel, her voice echoing in your head when she said, "I'm sorry for you". It just makes you want to crawl out of your skin to remember her tone, and her expression when saying that. Who the fuck is she to comment on your relationship like that?
It's really hard to focus on anything else while you're getting your mic packs taken off your gowns as the crew picks everything up before leaving. When you get the greenlight to go though, you remember your favourite curly headed lad waiting for you backstage, and that's when a smile comes back to your face. You cringe at yourself internally when you feel like you're following the light as you basically power walk your way back to Matty. Amelia cackles behind you when you loudly wince at your aching feet trying to keep up with your need to get to the backstage room yesterday at this point.
But feet pain be damned, you can barely even feel it when your boyfriend opens the door just as you're turning the last corner. And seeing him is just the thing you needed to calm you down. You can't help but grin as you look at him. He's changed into his black tuxedo, and has a crimson shirt underneath that matches the colour of your dress to a tee. He's got a few buttons undone and showing his chest tattoo, and the chain that falls over it adds to the whole look, so you don't know how to react. He looks so good with those curls bouncing freely on his head and you adore that he has a matching smile on his face as you all but run to each other.
"I'm so proud of you," Matty whispers in your ear after he catches you in his arms. You feel yourself melt into the embrace. He feels like home and it's such an overwhelming sense of relief that you feel like you could cry. Your voice sounds croaky when you softly reply, "Thank you baby."
He pulls back, pecking your lips quickly before analysing your face. He can see your eyes gleaming, slightly teary but that could just be the excitement of the moment, or even anxiety, so he makes sure to ask, "You good?"
Like a magnet, your lips are on his again, this time more of a proper kiss. One that says those three words you're holding in tightly to yourself. He hums tasting your mouth again, and it all feels so right. You pull back, give him the brightest smile, contagious as he mirrors it, and confirm, "I'm good."
Amelia's heels clicking closer make your turn slightly in Matty's arms, but it's her groaning at your displays of affection that makes both of you laugh. "Okay, you vile pair-" Amelia clicks her fingers at you both before she ushers you along, "Let's go party and get a burger before they run out of them!"
Matty snorts at her, "Burger first?" Knowing Amelia, he says that more as a statement rather than a question.
Yet, Amelia surprises him when she sighs, "No, let's head to the bar. I need some shots first."
Matty's eyes widen and you cackle at your best friend. Not entirely against her wishes. So the three of you waste no time gathering your belongings, sending the stuff you won't need back to your hotel, and heading inside to the big party.Â
The one thing you can think of when you step into the place is how Halsey was right saying this was a circus. You have to really put effort in keeping your jaw in place, because the amount of famous people you see walking around you so carelessly is insane.
You have to scorn yourself for still thinking about that conversation with Halsey, letting her words ruin such a monumental day in your career. But it proves quite hard when everything she said felt like a dig at you and your relationship. However, you do your very best to push the memory aside, focusing on enjoying this very moment with your best friend and your boyfriend.
When you come back to Earth, you see Amelia have the same look of disbelief on her face. Letting go of Matty's hand for a second, you hug your best friend tightly and squeal in her ear. A singular second of fangirling before you try and act cool so you don't blow your cover of 'fake it 'til you make it'.
Heading straight to the bar is a good way to fight that imposter syndrome. A shot of tequila helps you settle down a little, and sipping a fun cocktail on your way to your table rids you of your nerves. The three of you bump into Paul again, and you're all enthralled in amazing conversation for a while. People coming in to join you, and therefore meeting celebrities you had never thought you'd meet. It feels so surreal but you make sure to enjoy every bit of it.
That is until you volunteer to get the next round of drinks for you and Amelia. Matty had bumped into Kate Berlant, and after introducing you to her, you left him to chat with her while you went up to the bar.Â
In your giddy state, thanks to the alcohol making you feel warm and fuzzy inside, you miss the fact that a certain someone catches you making your way over to the bar. His voice alone startles you, the way he lowers his tone an octave when flirting with you. "Fancy seeing you again, gorgeous."
The icky actor who heavily flirted with you on the carpet is a few steps from you, and you're half sure he sees the subtle uncomfortable cringe you let yourself have. It's impossible for you not to look slightly horrified at the fact that he's back in your presence. You truly felt earlier like you were being preyed upon by a drunken fool. And if that's not enough, the awkward and cold tone in your voice should help. "Oh, hi." You turn away, hoping all the signs make up the clear message in his head.
Apparently, everything flies over his head. He swiftly takes a big step so he ends in front of you again. Massive smirk on his face as he continues his flirting, "Was hoping to see you in here."
Taking a deep breath, you remind yourself to be professional. After all, he could be a Chicken Shop Date, and that has never harmed anyone. "Yeah? Thank you so much for coming over to chat to us before." You smile, trying to be genuine with the encounter, because content is content at the end of the day. "It makes it so much easier for us when people are chatty."
It's an attempt to sound friendly, but the step you take back so you're at a distance from him, added to the fact that you hide your hands behind your back should give off the vibe that you don't want him close.
However, Mr. Can't Read Social Cues does not catch that either. He leans in as he comes closer to you, "Well, I saw you in that dress and couldn't stay away." He makes the effort to grab one of your forearms to take your hand and kiss the back of it with a smile on his lips, "You look like a million dollars."
Mentally, you scold yourself because you feel your cheeks burning. More so from annoyance that he is not getting your offstandish ways. You pull your hand back as calmly as you can. You would hate for anyone to see this entire interaction and take it the wrong way, awkwardly you smile at him trying to appear as if you're flattered. Truthfully though, all you can smell is the alcohol on his breath and you feel your skin crawl.
Clasping your hands behind your back again, you smile softly as you accept the compliment, "I certainly feel like it, thank you." He smiles endearingly at you, and you cringe internally when you realise he might be taking this as you being shy. And from the way his eyes keep looking you up and down you know he's not going to give up.Â
And your point is proven because it becomes so much more obvious that he just doesn't understand a woman's demeanour when he goes even further with his flirting, "I'd certainly pay that much for your company. You'd be worth every penny."
You scoff in disbelief, but mask it with a giggle when he raises a brow at your reaction. Never in a million years would you want this guy to spend a penny on you, so you jokingly say, "Well lucky for you I'm free."
The way his face lights up at your comment makes your heart drop to your arse. "You're free?" He asks with a hint of hopefulness behind his lustry yet drunk voice, "If you are, I'd love to take you out sometime?"
Shit. Fuck. Idiot. You laugh over-exaggeratedly, trying to make it seem like it was a joke, "Oh I'm sorry, I just meant I'm free to chat now."
Relentless might be this guy's second name though, or so it seems, because he continues to list all the things he is willing to do for you. "I would though," His eyes never leave you, and the way his gaze runs down your figure makes you squirm in your place. It's almost like he's eating you up with his eyes as he declares, "Absolutely love to take you out, pamper you, not to one of your chicken places though. I'm thinking fancy restaurants, treat you to something that'll truly satisfy you before we finish the night in the best way possible."
It's really hard not to roll your eyes at him, or push him away from you. You sigh as softly as you can, thinking about how awful it will be for the girls who might fall for his love-bombing ways in the future. Spare them please, whoever you are up there. Mustering your sweetest, kindest, smile, you start letting him down easy, "As lovely as that sounds I-"
But he is quick to interrupt, words drunkenly stumbling out his mouth, "If it's an issue because you're going back home soon, that doesn't have to be a problem. You're more than welcome to stay here in LA with me. I can show you around and take you to all the lovely restaurants and sights we have to offer... Equally if you really have to get back, I have residence over in England so maybe you could take me around London?"
Kindness be damned, you can't even hold a fake smile when you say, "Thank you for the kind offer but I have a boyfriend."
His face falls entirely, almost like the fact has sobered him up, "You have a boyfriend?"
"Yes," You say quickly, cold and cutting. But it seems like not even a boyfriend will stop his advances, because he very easily asks, "Is it serious?"
This time it's impossible to hold back from letting out a mocking laugh at him. Sarcastically, you reply, "I'd like to think so."
You would have paid hundreds for someone to have captured your face when he adds, "Does he really have to know?" Your jaw all but falls to the floor after hearing that. Bewildered is an understatement, and it takes you a few seconds to gather yourself and declare, "I'm not a cheater."
He sounds to be very well versed in the art of cheating and its loopholes when he suggests, "Is it really cheating if only us two know?"Â
You truly can't believe the words you're hearing. Never in your life did you think this talented actor would be a drunk idiot who prayed upon women. Appalled and disappointed don't quite cover it. "Yeah it is," You nod with no sympathy left in you. "As flattered as I am, I'm not interested. Thank you."
You make an attempt to go around him, and head for the other end of the bar, but he catches you before you can even take a third step. Your skin crawls at the feeling of his hand on yours again but looking back you hold your ground, not letting him intimidate you in the slightest. His face is riddled with confusion when he asks, "But the flirting?"
To anyone observing the encounter, the smile you give him might appear sweet, but to those who know you well would definitely see that you're being nothing but cynical. And you hope the lad catches it as you all but spell it out for him, "It's part of my job. I'm paid to do it. Please take the hint."
His cocky mouth opens again and you'd already prepared for another quip back at him, but thankfully a saviour appears. "Baby, do you need help carrying the drinks?" Hearing Matty's voice floods your system with relief, and you're quick to escape from the actor's grasp to wrap your arm around your boyfriend's side. It's amazing how just his presence alone calms you, but you're just glad you don't have to speak to the prick who's looking at you knowingly now.
Holding Matty's hand makes you relax all-together, and it can be heard in your voice when you nod at him, "Please, that'd be great."
He's awfully tense though. His jaw locked, brows furrowed, killing stare aimed at the drunk and stupid guy from the interviews. Matty can't help but menacingly ask, "Everything alright over here?"
"It was," The actor quickly replies. And you're relieved that this is all over far too soon, because he then puts on the most taunting smile and asks, "So this is the boyfriend?"
Matty clenches his hands, forgetting yours is holding him tightly. But before he can say anything that might end badly, you go ahead and factually say, "This is my boyfriend."
Your boyfriend who had been giggling and enjoying himself while chatting with some friends he had bumped into. That was until Kate mentioned something that Matty thought you would like. When he turned his gaze towards the bar to look for you, and saw this bloke chatting you up again, he excused himself and dashed your way. Every step he took was accompanied by the memory of everything he had said to you during your interviews. All the stupid one-liners that you had laughed at and not really turned down as evidently as Matty would have liked.
It's her job, he'd had to remind himself. But you weren't on camera anymore, not on the clock, not your job to entertain him anymore. And by the looks of it, something must have happened. When he was walking toward you, he saw you smiling but it was like you were gritting your teeth to even be able to manage the facial expression. Something had happened, and clearly you've handled it well, so Matty is simultaneously biting his tongue and holding himself back from making a scene, just as you are. Though he's sure you were getting your point across, it seems the drunk fool in front of the both of you clearly isn't quite taking the hint. Matty's hopeful that his presence now diffuses the situation.Â
A certain line he said comes back to your boyfriend, and Matty can't go without ill-willingly letting the lad know he is the one you're with, "She does look incredible on the dancefloor, by the way. Enjoy your evening."
You would have laughed if it wasn't for the fact that the comment only causes the man to smirk widely, winking at you before saying one last thing before he goes, "Think about it."
The lad walks away with a swagger that makes you scoff and roll your eyes. But those words only make Matty frown and question their meaning, "Think about what?"
"Nothing," You brush away with a shrug. But before you can turn back around towards the bar, Matty comes closer to you and inquires again, "What did knobhead want?"
You sigh, already tired of dealing with the lad and the consequences of his drunken words, "A date."
Matty's brows furrow even more. "At a chicken shop?" He has no say when it comes to who you date for work or not. But he will definitely voice his annoyance before you think of bringing him on the show. For all he cares, Amelia can take that date.
But Matty sees red when you confirm, "No, an actual one." Everything the actor said was so stupid to you, so it's not a big deal for you to share the absurd idea the prick had when you said you were taken. You raise your eyebrows as you tell him, "And for me to cheat apparently."
The dead look Matty gives you then screams, are you fucking serious? And when you press your lips together, you silently answer with a look of confirmation. "Oh, absolutely not." That is the last nail in the coffin for Matty. His head snaps to the direction the actor walked off in as he says under his breath, "I'm gonna deck the little cunt."
He goes on his tiptoes, looking through the crowd for him but before he can make any move, you keep him in his spot. You grab his forearm before he can even take a step and you stand directly in front of him, your grip tightening ever so slightly. His gaze falls on you and you sternly say, "Don't. He's gone now, that's all I wanted." You're so over the whole thing, and you don't want to let the prick ruin such a special night for you.
"He's got some nerve," Matty hisses through his teeth, still looking through the crowded room for the silly cunt. You don't think you've ever seen Matty so enraged. Not in person anyway, but this is much different to the videos where he's speaking passionately about something he believes in. You can practically see his anger seeping through his pores.
And while you agree, you want the whole thing dropped, "Please leave it. It's finished. It's fine, he's just a bit too drunk and clearly doesn't know what he's saying."
"It's not fine, not at all," Your boyfriend says back. You can see his rage through his eyes, pupils blown, and trying to find his target. He scoffs when he can't find the awful head of hair the lad sports in between the sea of people in the place. "Asking you to cheat? Really? Fucking dickhead."
You sigh, dropping your head to take a few seconds because you know that Matty's got every right to be upset about it. But you just want it over with. You don't want to think about that creep anymore, so you take a few seconds to acknowledge your emotions and let them pass. It takes a few seconds, and you can feel Matty's gaze on you but after a minute, you feel so much lighter.
When you pick up your head, you say, "Let's just get our drinks, yeah? I don't want this to ruin what this is for us." The fury in those brown eyes you love so much thankfully flickers out into nothing. And you relax a little more when your boyfriend manages to slip his hand into yours. And with the way that Matty leans in to kiss your cheek before you're off to actually get the drinks, you're thankful that he's complying with your wishes. Yet, the hard stare he gives the bartender when he smiles at you before taking your order tells you an entirely different story.
Possessiveness isn't something you've noticed from him in the past. But you can understand it just after a situation like this and there's a part of you that appreciates the way he's so willing to defend you. But you'd much prefer for him to just be at your side while you ignore advances from people like that. Not that you get many of those advances anyway, thank god.
You notice Matty's still a bit tense even when you get back to your table. It's hard to get a genuine chuckle out of him as he chats to the people who have been catching up with Amelia. And you can't miss the way he so overtly glancing around the room, not even being discreet with the way he's on the lookout for the damn actor. But there's only so much of that you can take, so you make a show of dragging him to the dancefloor with Amelia.
Luckily, your curly haired brunette can't avoid the hold you have on him for long. His hands are on your hips before he can even think about it, and his lips are looking for yours as you move to the rhythm of the catchy songs the DJ is playing.
Having a boyfriend that loves dancing around on stage and a best friend that enjoys making TikTok dances is a god send at this moment. Because you've never found yourself laughing so much as you watch the silly dances they both challenge each other with. And hearing that adorably quirky cackle that's so unique to Matty, when Amelia busts out a few wild moves, is music to your ears.
Relief floods you, and letting go as you're celebrating such a big night with two of your favourite people ever is so easy. You're only human though, and you grow thirsty after putting off your bodily functions for a good half hour.
Matty volunteers to go to the bar for another round, and you're so grateful for the quick break from the attack your heels have on your feet. Amelia and you are giggling and chatting in loud whispers to each other's ear while you wait for your drinks, but she leaves you in a rush when she spots someone she knows around the edges of the dancefloor.
You watch as she runs towards the girl and how they light up at the sight of each other before hugging tightly. The whole scene makes you sort of nostalgic for a memory in the making, and you just need to take it all in for a second. Your gaze goes around the entire room, taking in every detail and committing it to your memory. You can't help but feel so overwhelmingly lucky. Being at one of these events even a few years ago was a fever dream, and now that it's your reality and you were actually paid to attend is something you'll forever be grateful for. And then your eyes land on the person who makes you feel complete and your heart melts all over again.
On his way back to the table, Matty locks eyes with your dreamy stare, and you just spring up from your seat at the sight of him. He can't help but notice the tears threatening to spill on your waterline as he gets closer though, and he becomes a little worried. He's carrying three drinks and you rush to help him with them. Not because you want to take a sip of your fun little cocktail, but because you need to kiss him and feel his arms around you desperately.
"Everything okay?" He asks, concern evident in his tone.Â
You nod and peck his lips before grabbing your and Amelia's drink, quickly making the short way back to your table and setting them there for the time being. Turning on your heels, you see Matty set his glass right beside yours, but he's so conveniently close, your hand cups his jaw and you trap him in a loving kiss.
He hums against your lips, an arm wrapping around your waist while he rests on arm at the edge of the table. His worry dissipates quickly, and he can guess you just got in your head a little and you let yourself have a moment to take in everything that had happened in the last 24 hours. Matty only hopes that you're as proud of yourself as he is of you.
Giggles come from you when he leans forward, threatening to tumble you backwards and onto the table. You feel his smirk on your lips, but neither of you dare break the kiss. It's too perfect to stop yourself, you adore the feeling of the butterflies in your stomach as you kiss the man you love.
Matty knows you're not one for PDA, so this is a surprise to him, and he would be crazy to even think of cutting the moment short. Your mouths move together so naturally, second nature to show all the emotions inside you that you haven't said in words just yet. But you're so close to letting them out. His tongue teases the three words that hang on the tip of yours as he deepens the kiss. It's impossible for you not to break the kiss as you throw your head back in a cackle when his hand comes down from your waist to grab a handful of your arse. Even that's a step too far for you though, so you gently move his hand back to your lower back.
You're about to tease him for his actions, but he gets in there before you, so he can say, "I'm so proud of you, baby."
Your chest swells at the words, tears welling up in your eyes again when hearing the sweet conviction in his voice. There's nothing you love more than getting lost in those gorgeous brown eyes of his, and you can see just how earnest his statement is because you can feel the love he has for you radiating from him. But you don't get a chance to reply when you feel a hand resting gently on your upper arm, drawing your attention away from your lovely boyfriend.
Out of everyone you could expect to ruin such a moment, the last you expected was the person who stands right in front of you right now.
"Hey, there's no cameras in here, you know?" Halsey says, the condescending tone seeping from her lips as she continues, poison lacing her words, "You don't need to do this."
You have no idea what else to say other than, "Pardon?" as you and your boyfriend detangle from each other, which makes the intrusion all the more bitter.
But the singer fully ignores you, her gaze now falling on your boyfriend, who she gives a bright smile and greets with a nod and a soft, "Matty."
Standing up straight, but bringing you with him as he still clutches your waist, Matty smiles back at her to make this a friendly situation, "Ashley, how've you been?"
"Okay, thank you." She smiles at him, "Saw your show in LA. Your tour seems to be going well."
"Yeah," Matty nods, "I'm certainly enjoying it, thank you."
And while this exchange is very pleasant for distant exes, you can't help yourself. You have to know what she meant when she first came over and interrupted you, "I'm sorry, what don't I need to do?"
The woman with the wet look pixie cut finally looks at you again now. The harshness of her dark eye makeup makes her stare even more jarring when she finally responds with, "Be all over him-" She nods at Matty, "Because you went on a filmed date."
"There's a 'no camera policy' in here." She smiles patronisingly at you, as if she wants it to come across like she's doing you a favour when she informs you, "No one will report on what you're trying to do... So you can relax, and just enjoy the party."
Despite the shock of that coming from absolutely nowhere, all you can think is, wow, what a dumb fucking bitch. For a start, you don't know how she's missed the fact you and Matty are officially an item. It's not as if either of you have been hiding it, and from the way you've both been prayed on by the paparazzi over the last few months, you know that media companies in America have had you in articles over here.
Secondly, if you and Matty were faking a relationship just to get more coverage in the media, who the fuck is this bitch to tell you what not to do? Who the fuck is she to get involved in yours or Matty's business at all?
But before you say anything, you want to hear her admit to this being what she thinks is going on. You frown a little, feigning confusion, "And what am I trying to do?"
"Oh, you know. The dancing, the hugging, the kissing..." She looks between you and almost laughs when she sees Matty's arm still wrapped around your waist. "You might as well be attached to his hip."
As annoying as it is to have your relationship questioned in this way, you can't help but find this whole interaction rather amusing. An ex getting a little too involved in a new relationship is genuinely hilarious to you, especially when Matty has (in the past) already stressed just how much he and Halsey were never an official item.
Before your boyfriend picks his jaw up to correct the woman he used to sleep with, you beat him to it. And Matty can't help but take pride in the way you're so nonchalant and sarcastic about it. "Oh right," You nod before dryly saying. "I wasn't aware that I needed permission to have a drink with, or dance with, or kiss my boyfriend but I'll certainly endeavour to get authorisation next time." You turn towards him slightly, laying a hand over his shirt as you ask, "Matty, any issues?"
Even from just this small shared look between you, the humour is so clear in both of your eyes just how amusing you're finding this.Â
"None at all." Matty smiles at you.
The smirk that finds its way to your lips has your boyfriend biting his tongue to stop himself laughing. There's certainly a silent conversation happening between you, and it's along the lines of, I can't believe you used to date this woman - yeah it wasn't my best decision making - I can't believe the audacity she has - Yeah, tell me about it. Why do you think it didn't last?
"Wait," Halsey brings you back to reality and the both of you glance back to her, watching as she blinks slowly, and there's something so satisfying about seeing the moment realisation seeps in. "This is real?" The singer points between the two of you, dumbfoundedly asking, "You two are actually..."
Letting your voice have that noticeable gravel drawl, you nod slowly, patronisingly, "As real as a heart attack."
"Since when?" She frowns, shaking her head as if she still doesn't believe you.
It's a pathetic question regardless. Her having a date won't make her believe your romance any more than she already does. Matty has to hold back a scoff, unable to believe how entitled she feels to information that is none of her business. Especially not when she approaches the two of you with a ridiculous superiority complex, "Since I asked her to be my girlfriend and she said yes."
The bitch inside you wishes she could add, A question that you never heard.Â
Before you could even have the chance to though, Matty wraps the interaction up for the both of you, "Now if you'll excuse us Ashley, we've got things to be doing." Your boyfriend quickly reaches behind you and grabs the drinks again before you start walking off. "Wish I could say it's been great to see you, but alas."
You're somewhere between wanting to scoff or laugh as you take yours and Amelia's drinks from Matty, pinching both glasses between your fingers, so you can take Mattys other hand in your free one. Ultimately, you just end up shaking your head a little when you look at the curly haired brunette, finally getting to voice, "She's actually deluded."
"Yeah, well. Nothing that different from ten years ago." Matty sighs like he can't stand his past self for ever going there. And you're sure you'll talk about it more at some point tomorrow when you recap your day, but for now, you're happy when he gives your hand a squeeze and smiles at you, "Come on, I swear I just saw George."
You grin, looking around yourself for the lovely gentle giant who's in this room full of stars. And it doesn't take you long to find the man in question, and when you do, you see that he's already found your best friend too. George - dressed in a lovely light grey suit - and Amelia are in deep conversation when you get to them, but what you fail to notice until someone else moves out of your way is that there's another special guest with them.
This man is wearing a dashing burgundy suit with a black shirt underneath, his beard groomed to perfection, and his hair tied back in that man bun that screams 'pull me'. It's absolutely no wonder that you slip from Matty's grip to go and say hello to the man you're so very lucky to call your friend.
"Ross!" You smile brightly, wrapping your arms around the tall bassist. And you take every comfort in the big hug that he gives you, "I didn't know you were here!"
"Yeah well, these two were coming so I didn't wanna be left out." He explains, "And Hann was going back home, so I just got on the plane with George instead."
You chuckle a little, but then realise again where you are and just how prestigious this place is. He certainly couldn't just come in with George, he'd have to be on a list. So you ask a little confused, "But how'd you get into the after party?"
"Oh," Ross grins at you then, releasing you from your hug before he takes a step back and wraps his arm around Amelia, "Courtesy of your best friend. I'm her boyfriend for the evening."
"Oh," Your jaw falls slightly, as you glance between them, smiles on both their faces. You can't stop yourself from nodding, "Lucky."
"Lucky who?" Matty asks, taking his place by your side once more having already said hello to George.
You briefly hum in amusement, "Don't ask questions you don't wanna know the answers to." Unsurprisingly, Matty pinches you then as the others start laughing at you. But with a quick playful slap to his arm, you promise him, "I'm kidding, I'm kidding."
"I know you are." Your boyfriend nods, pulling you tightly into his side for a moment so he can kiss your cheek, and deciding to throw caution to the wind even more, you steal a proper kiss from him. PDA be damned.
After your kiss, you slip from Matty's grip once more to give Amelia her drink and to greet George properly. You adore the bear hug he gives you, and it's an effort to pull away from the warm embrace. "Where have you been the past few hours?" You ask him.
"Charli wanted to be fashionably late," He explains with a big smile, "And me and Ross wanted a back door entrance."
"You could have come through with us ages ago." You slap his arm a little. You all could have been having a good time together so much earlier if you knew this. Already knowing Charli will look amazing, you can't help but get excited to see her again as it's always an amazing night when you're out with her. You hope that she comes and finds you all soon.
"You two ladies-" The drummer nods to you and Amelia, "Attract too much attention and the last thing we need is more attention."
George adds with a smirk as he looks at Ross, "Especially after last night."
You frown at that, not quite understanding, "Last night?" You're so confused, as the only thing you know that happened last night was, "SNL?" Even when you glance at Matty for some insight, he looks just as confused as you. He's none the wiser, so you're happy as the drummer continues divulging more information.
"The afterparty..." George smirks, his eyes full of mischief when he informs you, "Where several women had to be escorted out because they were fighting over Ross."
Your jaw drops at first, imagining that scene and being slightly disappointed that you missed seeing that unfold. But the fomo dissipates, and a shit-eating grin cracks on your face as you turn to your boyfriend to say, "I told you they like Ross more than you! I told you!"
All your boyfriend has to say about it is, "Bullshit." Clearly not wanting to let go of the heartthrob-of-the-band title but you won't back down when it's a fact now.
"He is, and he has been for a while." You nod, and you even look to George for back up when you add, "I bet they were all over him."
"Swear on my life, Matty." George mimes a cross over his heart, and the biggest smile lights up your face. Being right about it is just fueling your ego on another level, and it's even better when his best friend adds, "Never seen anything like it before." George's smirk makes giggles bubble up your chest, and you let them out childishly when he clutches the bassist's shoulder and sets on stone, "Ross MacDonald the last last single stud of The 1975, ready to be devoured at any given moment."
Devoured. The use of the word makes your face heat up, and it is then that intrigue takes over. It's impossible not to ask, "Did you show any of them a good time at least?"
"How dare you suggest such a thing." Ross fakes a scoff before wrapping his arm around Amelia's waist and pulling her into his side as he plays on their new fake dynamic, "I've got a girlfriend to think about." You don't know whether to be jealous or happy for your best friend. But watching her blush has you wanting to scream at the top of your lungs. Maybe it's time to suggest a foursome to Matty?
Instead, you smirk and switch up your inquiry, "Are you going to show her a good time?"
Ross smirks at you before looking down at your very flustered best friend, deciding to reply with a mysterious, "If we're lucky."
Matty and George shake their heads, pulling Ross away from Amelia as you just look at your best friend and mouth, 'you lucky, lucky bitch'. The grin on your face won't subside as she walks towards you and grabs your hand, saying a quiet, "Shut up, shut up." The giggle that leaves your lips is loud, but the smile from this point onwards never leaves your face. Taking your hand, Amelia pulls you to the dancefloor, clearly needing a moment where it's just the two of you and no friends around to embarrass her further. Although, you do make her blush once more by telling her to go for it with Ross. Even if it's just for a night, she's absolutely won either way.
Unsurprisingly the subject gets dropped, even though you see the way her eyes linger on the bassist as she gets a little more tipsy and as you dance with her you catch the way Ross' eyes linger on her. You hope the both of them end up having a wonderfully messy night.
All previous sour interactions have left your mind, each sentence that had made you feel bittersweet before has been switched for the sound of Amelia's giggles as you have a dance off with each other. Charli bestows compliments on you when she eventually finds you, about your makeup and dresses and there's so much laughter from you all, but especially from George when you start your fake advances at his girlfriend. Not to mention how happy Matty's kisses make you feel, and you can't help but love the way Ross' winks at your best friend. Every negative thought you'd had while being here thankfully completely disappeared. You feel like you're riding such a high, and you wish you could bottle up that feeling and never let go of it.
"Come on, dance with me." You ask your boyfriend, and he absolutely indulges in your wishes without a second thought.
Dancing with him, song after song, wraps it all together for you. The man of your actual teenage dreams dancing with you, kissing you every chance he gets, at a place that never in your wildest dreams you thought you would be invited to, surrounded by people you only ever saw through big screens or on stage metres away from you.
It's a little wild to you how many familiar faces come up to you while you're on the dancefloor to speak to you about your work. About how much they adore Chicken Shop Date, or about how they love the way you and Amelia are on camera, and even how they love your friendship. Everyone is so beyond kind to you, and you truly don't think your heart has ever been so full. These talented people come up to you expressing how brilliant they think your show is, the one that you and your best friend dreamt up back in high school. Not only that, but now these celebrities are saying that they would love to be on a chicken shop date when you propose the idea of them coming on the show.
A million emotions course through you, and sometimes you don't even know how to react to it all. You're grateful, first and foremost, but it becomes rather overwhelming after a few hours of greeting so many new-but-old faces. Imposter syndrome mixed with the cocktails, aching feet, and a damn long past few days, you can feel your social battery draining at an increasing rate.
Matty is the first to notice, and he keeps a close eye on you until you say something. Only that you don't. And he can see the fact that you would rather be anywhere else but here now, but the words won't come out of your mouth.
"You wanna get a burger and head back to the hotel?" He asks into your ear while you softly dance together to a slower song.
You perk up instantly, your tired eyes widening at the thought of some food and the comfy hotel bed. Nodding, you smile to agree, "I would love to."
Your boyfriend pecks your lips before he stands up straight. A smile comes to his face when he sees your shoulders fall in relief at the prospect of leaving, "Let's say bye to them lot, and we'll sneak off."
Goodbyes are quick with the boys, George and Ross both giving you a bear hug and they melt your heart when they say they're proud of you, and you kiss them on their cheeks as a thank you. Charli gives you a hug before she's dragged away by someone who only just found her, but that gives you more time saying goodbye to your best friend. You're sure it's a solid 2 minutes that you clutch each other tightly for. You're both swaying, refusing to release the other, whispering how much you love each other and how proud you are of each other. Without any doubt you know that at one point you almost make her cry, and it's when you just about choke out that you can't believe that you've both made it.Â
When you eventually release each other, Matty notes the glassiness to your eyes so you really appreciate the way he grabs your hand and pulls you into his side and kisses your temple. On your way over to the fast food stand, you get stopped by a few more people wanting quick chats, all of the encounters leave you smiling like a lunatic despite you growing more tired by the minute. Before you know it, your order is being bagged up for the both of you, and Matty has your hand in his as you both aim for the exit. You can't help but steal one last glance at the room filled to the brim with A listers and you feel beyond lucky all over again.
Pride fills your chest as you take it all in for the last time, and you can't tame the smile on your lips. But that smile turns to a full on grin as you turn to leave after spying your best friend and a certain bassist dancing too suggestively and far too close together. God certainly has favourites, and you and Amelia are certainly near the top of the pecking order.
~*~*~*~
Matty holds your big In-N-Out bag, leaning against the doorframe while you look through your little purse for your hotel room key.
All that is on your mind is taking your heels off, eating, taking off your makeup, and cuddling your boyfriend in bed until you fall asleep. You can't get in the room quick enough once the door opens, and Matty can't stop smiling at you. Your little list is stuck like a post-it to the forefront of your mind, and you tick the first item off it as soon as you open the door. Seeing where your expensive and borrowed heels fly to, distracts you for a few seconds from the very big surprise that awaits you sitting on the coffee table.
"Oooo flowers!" You gasp loudly, dropping your purse on the floor, when your gaze lands on the royal blue and white roses. There's so many of them it fills the table as a stunning centrepiece. "These are huge," you can't stop yourself from thinking out loud, wondering how many roses make up for the large arrangement. "They must've been so expensive for Vanity Fair to buy. I guess they've got the money though."
You chuckle hearing yourself, but before going back to your boyfriend and the delicious meal that awaits you, you notice the little envelope that pops out in between the flowers. It's been placed in such a way that you don't see the 'Baby' written on the back of it until you pluck it from the holder.
"Matty..." you say under your breath, knowing that this is his handwriting, and therefore, the flowers are his doing. As you go to open the envelope, a soft "What?" falls from your lips, but he just watches you with a smile so that you continue reading the little note.
'I never thought something we said on our first ever date would be so true. Thank you for showing me the art that is dating you. You continue to amaze me every day. I'm so unbelievably proud of you, baby.'
Your heart is hammering against your chest, begging to escape its humane prison to end up in his hands. Each word on the note branding itself on the forefront of your mind while your eyes can't stop going over them again and again. It's hard to tell if you're dreaming or not.
"You deserve them and more," your boyfriend says, snapping you out of your trance.
"Baby." You whisper, a lump almost forming in your throat at the emotions threatening to escape. But of course they do, your eyes fill with tears and a few fall slowly down your cheeks. Instantly, you walk towards him, your arms instantly wrapping around his neck and burying yourself into the comfort that is his body. Matty holds you tightly, but on your way over, he spied your glistening eyes. So he leans back a little, prying your face from his neck and cupping your cheeks in his hands so he can see his gorgeous girlfriend.
"No," He says softly, trying not to coo at your pouting face. Thumbs rubbing at your cheeks as he attempts to stop your tears from spilling, "No crying on me."
But it's actually impossible not to. Not when the flowers are insanely beautiful, not when his words make your heartbeat erratic. Not when everything you feel about him is coming over you like pouring rain, impossible not to become overwhelmed by their effect over you. "Thank you so much, I- I-" Your eyes leave his briefly, glancing back at the beautiful bouquet, your voice almost cracks as you explain, "No one's ever given me flowers before."
It's almost pathetic that you're crying over flowers, but it just feels so special and you feel beyond grateful for this charming man being in your life. Never have you felt so happy. Never did you think this sort of happiness was intended for you, and the fact you now have it makes it all the more precious to you.Â
You all but fling yourself at your boyfriend again, clutching him as tight as you possibly can which makes Matty release one of those wonderfully unique giggles of his. He smiles, leaning into you to place a kiss where your shoulder meets your neck before he says, "Well if you're going to cling to me like this, please expect them all the time now."
A teary giggle escapes your throat, but you don't let him go as you whisper a sincere, "Thank you so so much."
"Anything for you." Matty smiles, his hand rubbing up and down your back comfortingly. He gently tells you again, "I'm so so proud of you."
"I'm proud of you." It's a must that you say it back at him, because getting to witness all the things he and the guys are doing fills you up with pride. But there is also a tinge of regret when you admit, "I wish I'd brought you a present to New York now."
Of course, your boyfriend is adorable and says, "I had you as my present. And you're all I'll ever need." He kisses your cheek, and his lips brush the soft skin of your face as he declares, "Best present ever."
But that only makes you want to cry again. Your chin wobbles, and your eyes fill with tears, while your voice is just strong enough to let out a broken, "Matty."
"No crying." He smiles with a tiny shake of his head, and he makes an effort to be cheerier and to distract you a little so you're not ending the night crying, no matter if the tears are happy or sad. "Come on," Matty takes one of your hands in his and gives it a little squeeze before smiling brightly, "Let's eat. I don't know about you but I'm starvin'."
Sniffling a little, you wipe the remnants of your tears and move your gorgeous flowers towards the side so that Matty and you could set up your feast on the nearby glass table. You take your seats on either side of the corner, so you're facing each other and your feet end up knocking against each other as you set out your meal.
The food has gotten a little cold now, but it still looks amazing. And after such a long day, you can't wait any longer to dig in. After taking a big bite of your cheeseburger, you hum in content and dance a little in your place. Matty chuckles as he takes a bite as well, and it's when he grabs a chip that you get nostalgic.
The parallels between your first ever date, contractual or not, and tonight are all that you're thinking, "I feel like we're in a really fancy version of a chicken shop."
"Yeah, same." Matty agrees, looking around as he takes in the luxurious look of the hotel room and compares it to that chicken shop in London where you first dated, "Fancier venue too. The food is just the same and average."
You can't help but think about how much you would pay to go back to that first date. To tease him for being late, ask all the silly questions Amelia and you had come up with, to get him flustered and for him to get you flustered. Never would you have thought that it would have brought you here, to this very moment. And the conclusion you always get to is, "I wouldn't have it any other way."
Your boyfriend gives you a sickenly sweet smile, and his eyes scream sincerity when he replies, "Me neither."
Your smile is huge just before you take a bite of your burger, but Matty's silent questioning has you explaining, "You're practically dressed the same as you were on our date."
Matty looks down at himself and chuckles, "Oh yeah." noticing only his shirt is a different colour to the white one he wore on the date.
"I feel like I'm on par with you now." You take his attention back to you, and his eyes drop to your exquisite crimson dress again and he can't help but smile.
"Hey," Matty raises his eyebrows as he eats a chip. He's unable to stop his smirk, "You looked amazing in those leather pants." The memory of it makes you giggle, and you're sure you'll never forget the way he looked at you on your official second date either when you wore the black ones just to toy with him. You make a mental note to get a few more leather pieces for your wardrobe when you get back home.
"Not as good as you in those black ones in the Love Me video." You grin, "Your arse is better now than it was back then, I need to get you in a pair again." Biting your lip for a second, you have to add, "Tight ones, preferably."
The snort that Matty releases makes a smile appear on both of your faces. "I knew you only wanted me for my body." You hum in fake agreement, with a playful roll of your eyes as you take another bite of your burger. Matty feeds you a few of his chips then which makes you giggle again but you gratefully accept them.
Relishing the moment you are sharing with your boyfriend is easy, but it's hard for you to wrap your head around everything that's happened tonight, "This still feels so surreal. I can't believe this is my life."
Matty, being the jokester that he is, can't help himself and says, "Baby, I thought you were over being starstruck by my presence."
You roll your eyes, and sarcastically laugh, "Ha, ha. You're a little shit." And though you would love to joke about it, like you know your boyfriend is trying to do, to make whatever ramble you're about to go on not as heavy on yourself, you can't help but let your thoughts leave you freely.
"It's just-, I don't know." It's frustrating how you can't find the appropriate words for your feelings, so you just continue talking, "A designer offered to make this dress for me. Vanity Fair and The Academy wanted Amelia and I as hosts for this carpet. People we have been looking up to for ages actually recognised us and said they love our work."
"I don't understand how this just happened. And it's not been overnight. We've been doing this for almost 10 years now. But... I'm just amazed by it all." Truth be told, you had never thought things would come to be this big for you two after such a long time trying to make it anywhere. "And I feel awful that I just wanted to be gone by the end of the party." You felt so ungrateful in the moment, and now you feel the need to apologise for it, "I'm sorry, by the way. For letting my energy get so low, and just not keeping up with the energy inside the party."
"Baby-," Matty starts, but you can't hear him say you don't need to apologise again.
"No, I-. You might have wanted to stay, but I was just drained." Admitting that is hard, knowing that you should've enjoyed every second of it. Imposter syndrome being exchanged for shame at yourself for not taking in every little bit that you're getting back now. "And I know you. I know we left because of me."
The look you give him makes him reach out for you, holding your hand over the table. Earnestly, he starts, "Baby, you don't have to apologise for that. Ever." You pout at him, unsure of how to truly feel; relieved by the reassurance that it's okay to have wanted to escape all that, or still guilty to have felt so overwhelmed by such a big night.
Your boyfriend knows how to get you to smile though, because he gives you a cheeky smile as he adds, "You know we'll always leave at the same time."
A snort comes from you, and you shake your head while fighting a big grin tugging at the corners of your lips to call him out, "Of course you had to do a self-reference."
He shrugs, squeezing your hand twice, "Made you laugh."
You hum, not wanting to actually acknowledge that, instead admitting, "Made me want to listen to Notes."
Matty grabs another chip, with the hand he's not holding yours with, and contently promises, "I'll serenade you once I'm done with my food."
Now that's one thing you'd love, so you smile brightly as you continue to eat. But Matty notices how your smile fades off as you silently continue eating, so it's no surprise when you show that you've been giving it all a thought again when you confess, "I know you just said I shouldn't apologise but I must confess it's become so much attention now, sometimes I think I'm not made for it."
He looks at you seriously this time, knowing how hard it is to struggle with fame. Having dealt with not only his own, but his parents' and the effect it had on his family. Even though he knows it's not the best thing to hear, he knows that the best insight he can give you is, "You sort of get used to it."
"What if I never do?" You ask genuinely, "Because I can deal with the dates, the promo for them, and these events. But only when it's on camera." A heavy sigh leaves you when you remember what happened earlier, another example of why that attention you're getting can be so inconvenient, "I was so uncomfortable when that guy came up to me inside."
"That prick?" Matty says straight away, but he notices what he's doing again, so he rephrases it, "The actor?"
"Yeah. He wouldn't get any of the things I was telling him. And then you came over..." The feeling of uncertainty that filled you at that moment comes back as a ghost that makes goosebumps break on your skin, "I didn't know what to do, honestly."
Your boyfriend pales, and stops eating. It's clear now how much of a dickhead he had been earlier, and he apologises for it, "I'm sorry for reacting like that instead of comforting you."
You don't want to make it a big deal, not wanting for that drunk guy to take away from tonight. And you know that Matty saw all the flirting on the livestream, you cannot judge him for being jealous when you would've been too if you were in his position, "It's alright, I get it."
But you sure appreciate how self-aware and thoughtful your boyfriend is when he continues, "No, I went defensive instead of making sure you were okay. And I know you can handle yourself, and you did handle it yourself but I should've thought of only you instead of wanting to get all macho man with the lad."
What you don't expect though, is for another apology to follow. "And while we're apologising, I'm sorry about Ashley's behaviour." It takes you a second to realise he's talking about Halsey but he continues, "You didn't need all of that today and certainly, especially on camera but even afterwards in the party." Matty can't help but shake his head as he frowns, "She never could bite her tongue if something was on her mind but that hit a new low this evening."
"Nonsense," You shake your head, picking up another few chips as you say, "You don't have to apologise for that, for her."
"I know I don't," Matty is instant and even pauses eating as he tells you, "But maybe if in the past, if I had left things a little better, you wouldn't have had to be on the receiving end of that today."
You can see the guilt simmering in his eyes, and that's something you never wish to see. Especially about this specific subject. There's nothing you want him apologising for. "Her not growing up and getting over it is not your issue." You very seriously say, looking into his gorgeous eyes as you promise him, "She didn't ruin my night, and you don't need to apologise."
You lean across the table and take his hand, squeezing a little as you smile, "Having you here with me tonight was one of the best things about it."
Matty can't help but smile as he intertwines your fingers. He tilts his head to the side as he playfully asks, "Not the best thing about it?"
"Oh no no," You can't help but smirk at him, grabbing another chip with your other hand and eating them as you grin, "You gotta know your place."
Matty can't help but laugh, but he indulges you, asking, "Do tell."
He's so beyond easy to wind up, it's a joke. And all it takes is three little words. Your curly haired brunette's face changes entirely when you smirk, "Seeing Ross, obviously."
"Oh come on!" Matty scoffs, pulling his hand from yours to playfully hit the table in fake frustration. It's beyond funny as you can see him wanting to laugh, but he manages to restrain himself. But you can't help but think back to the man who your boyfriend still doesn't believe is now more thirsted over than himself. One day you will show him the depth of stan twitter.
"Did you see him and Amelia when we left?" You have to question as you eat some more of your food, and you almost find yourself flushing a little when you ask, "I wonder if they left together."
Matty smiles, as it wouldn't surprise him after the way he saw his mate looking at your best friend this evening. But he can't help but plead, "Don't put a glass to the wall I beg."
"She's across the hall, so at least we're safe." You chuckle a little, but you can't help but let your mind go a little wild and your lips get a little loose as you add, "However, I'd do anything to be a third."
Never have you seen your boyfriend's jaw fall so fast than it did just then, and it takes everything you have to stop yourself from bursting out laughing. His dramatic leaning back in his chair, shaking his head and crossing his arms, "Wow, okay," makes it even harder to stifle your laughter.
"Oh don't get jealous." You purse your lips to stop your amusement from showing, but you're sure that you're not hiding it very well. "If there's a third, there would be a fourth. I'd bring you."
Matty raises his eyebrows, as he half laughs, half scoffs in disbelief, "Oh how gracious of you!"
You can't hold your laughter then, and it seems your boyfriend can't either. You both let a few laughs out, the last of your food long since forgotten in front of you, but Matty shakes his head as his chuckling slowly subsides, "I'm not sharing you. No way."
"Oh come on." You tease, the smile on your face never faltering as you carry on taking the mick, "Even with our best friends? We've all kissed before."
"What now?" Matty's eyes somehow get wider.
"Well," You chuckle as you correct yourself, "Me and Amelia, you and Ross. What's the difference?"
Your boyfriend shakes his head, "No." A smile is still tugging on his lips though, and you're adamant to get that grin back on his face.
"Come on!" You lean forward and poke his knee, trying now to annoy him into submission.
"No, I don't want them to touch you." Matty bats your hand away, shaking his head again, his curls going everywhere as he says, "No way."
Smirking, you sing-song, "You're jealous."
Matty wraps a curl around his finger a few times before he says, "No."
"Don't lie." You laugh, knowing full well that you're right. So you nod, repeating yourself, "You're so jealous."
You would've bet thousands on him not admitting he was jealous, yet he shocks you first when he easily replies, "Well of course I'm jealous." But it's far easier for him to say, "I love you."
You see his face change from the faux nonchalant demeanour he had put on to tone down his jealousy, to an expression of surprise at himself. But his face didn't fall in fear nor embarrassment. There was a shadow of relief, a sparkle of anticipation rather than dread for your answer. Because, truly, he's spent so many nights thinking about when the best moment to tell you would be. The struggle to keep in those three words has been excruciating, but the need to make it special has been even worse.
But now he's here, letting slip at such a random time, and though he should be worried he's fucked it all up by saying it now, he feels a weight lift off his shoulders. His heart beats freely inside his chest, content at the fact that it's all out in the open, just waiting for what you're going to say next.
A massive smile makes its way to your face, your cheeks will be hurting and you know it, because there's nothing and no one that will be able to wipe it off your face. "Yeah?" You giggle because the two of you saying these words to each other like this is so you. And you truly wouldn't have it any other way. That's exactly why you add, "I'd probably be jealous as well because I love you too."
"Give me a kiss." Matty's grin is unlike anything you've seen before, and he leans forward, needing that closeness once more. Of course, you're about to lean forward and kiss him, but a memory springs to mind which keeps you sitting back in your seat.
The smile on your lips is untamable when you say, "Can't reach."
Something in Matty's heart lurches when you say that. The image of you doing the exact same thing to him back on your first date is quick to enter his mind. He can't believe just how much has changed since that day. Never would he have imagined that agreeing to the date and asking for you back at the NME awards would lead to him being in the most meaningful relationship of his life. Never has he felt such love from another person, or has been so in love before.
So there's absolutely no hesitation from him when he smiles, "I can reach."
"I can't reach." You stay where you are, a massive smile still on your face as you sit back needing the past to repeat itself.
Smirking, Matty stands up, "I can reach." and he places his hands on the table dividing you, leaning closer, and he gently takes your chin between his thumb and finger and makes you look up at him. He leans in closer to kiss you but pauses a few inches away to promise, "I'll always reach."
And if you weren't already madly and deeply in love with him, you would have been then. You bridge the gap and kiss the love of your life like you can't wait another second.
You've kissed your boyfriend before a million times, every one of them releasing a swarm of butterflies in your stomach, but this time it feels different. His plush lips slotting between yours, the warmth of his hands cupping your face, the sound of his soft exhales as he moves with you. His tongue poking out slowly to tease yours, an invasion that you accept gracefully with a hum that makes him hold you a little tighter. But it's not rushed, it's not shadowed by lust or need; it's slow and deliberate, intense yet thoughtful, like both of you are trying to memorise what it feels to taste each other's mouth when the novelty of those three words is still fresh on your tongues.
Matty's smile is so soft once he pulls back from the kiss, despite having done reluctantly so. "Say it again."
"I love you." You whisper, needing him to know those words are only ever for him from this moment on. Your heart is his and it forever will be. Nothing will ever change that now.
Matty watches you say that to him, and he can't believe his luck. You're it for him, and he has every intent to cross every milestone with you. Give it a year and he has every intention to have a stone on your left ring finger.
He presses another kiss to your lips just before he promises, "I love you." The small giggle that leaves your lips in answer is one of pure joy. You can't believe that you're so lucky, that you have such a wonderful man who has been your crush for years declaring his love for you.
"Okay, I'm changing my answer," You say randomly, not really bursting the bubble of your moment but piquing at Matty's curiosity.
So he is quick to ask, "To what?"
You definitely get his heart racing when you make clear what it is that you're referring to, "Seeing Ross wasn't the best thing to happen today."
He smirks, prematurely smug about what you're about to say and how it definitely involves him. "Ah, really. What's the best thing now?"
Yet, you remind him of just why he fell absolutely and irrevocably in love with you when you say someone else's name instead of his, "Paul Mescal."
Matty cackles loudly, not having anticipated you saying that at all, but he plays along, "Now that's a crush I can get behind. We have similar taste with that one."
"See?" You grin, "That's why I love you."
~*~*~*~ The End ~*~*~*~
A/N: We're so damn emotional finishing this story. We never anticipated what it was going to become, but we thank you endlessly for all the love you gave it and allowing us to continue to have fun with it. Long live Baby and Matty, we'll miss them loads.
Taglist: @kennedy-brooke @faveficz @indierockgirrlâ @slutformattyhealy @kmsmedine @cecefaithâ @benkidgenius @avasjunkpile@spicyraccoonlordking@lizzylynch1â @ofbluesandyellowsâ @kipperthedog2004â @slutforcoffeinâ @madamedesmondâ @iamhallucinationnn @imagines4peeps @siwiecolaâ @eaglestar31 @neverlieliliacâ @olliewhinchesterâ @internetmultifandomfangirl @wellwellhereiamâ @dania7361 @kurdtbean @mawanji @jazzymariexoxoc @picklesandsprinkles @home-of-disasterâ @maelialuvâ @londonalozzyâ @ker0senebunnyâ @golden-hoaxâ @thouarntsageâ @belledawnidkâ @confusedcrayonâ @how2understandâ @harringt8nsâ @sheisaaantisocialâ @brumantrack @real-actual-human-personâ @eddiemunsonsgroupie @hemmings8376â @darlingbravebelle @defnotgraceeâ @fabulouslyflamboyant5 @deamus-livâ @itsjustsocialimplicationsâ @deamus-livâ @itsjustsociallimplicationsâ @lauren--maexâ @ithinkivegonemad11â @stclen-sweetheartsâ @stuck-in-fictional-worlds @befrwimeâ @getbillzonedâ @hazskillerqueenâ @conanbeshiftingâ @thereisaplaceintheheartâ @jasmine06blogâ @blancastansââ @luvrattyhealy @wendyspotatopeelerââ @oh-caroâ @journey-to-consistencyâ @kizzywhâ @ihatemat-tyhealyâ @l0ve-0f-my-life @julezs-bl0g @geeksareunique @eddiemunsonsgroupie @procrastinatinglikeapro @inlovewrobin @houseofdilfs @wh0re4zaynmalik @qtheressurections @hrryshoney @sinarainbows @behindmygreyeyes @oliviahickson @strugglingsophieee
#matty healy#matty#healy#matty healy x reader#matty x reader#the 1975#1975#matty the 1975#matty healy the 1975#matty 1975#the 1975 matty#1975 matty#the 1975 imagine#the 1975 fanfic#the 1975 fic#the 1975 fanfiction#matty healy fluff#matty healy fanfic#matty healy fanfiction#matty healy fic#matty healy drabble#matty healy blurb#matty healy smut#matty healy x y/n#matty healy x you#matty healy x oc#iliwys#abiior#noacf#bfiafl
108 notes
¡
View notes
Text
NNN - baker!matt - pregnancy cravings
Pregnancy had turned your cravings into tiny adventures â ones Matt never hesitated to take on. Every craving, no matter how specific or inconvenient, became a mission for him to make you happy. His dedication wasnât just about food; it was about showing love in the sweetest way possible.
-
001 - Pretzelâs
It was just after midnight, and you were wide awake. You couldnât get comfortable, shifting every minute until you finally gave up â staring at the ceiling. You tried to think of things to help you drift off for the night, mattâs sleeping figure next to you shouldâve lulled you to sleep a while ago â but it didnât.
But as you continued to look at the ceiling, a strong craving hit you like a lightning bolt â soft, warm pretzels. The kind sprinkled with coarse salt, dipped into cheese sauce, and melting in your mouth. You groaned, turning over in bed.
The action made Matt stirred beside you, his head turning to look at you as he blinked his eyes heavily. His sleepy voice breaking the silence after a moment. âWhatâs wrong sweetheart?â he said, his voice rough.
You looked at him the best you could through the darkness in the room. âI canât stop thinking about pretzels,â you admitted, feeling silly.
He raised a brow, a teasing smile forming on his lips. âPretzels, huh?â
You nodded sheepishly, hating the fact that you woke Matt up now because of yourself. âYeah, but itâs late. Forget I said anything.â
Matt shook his head, âNot a chance.â He said, slowly sitting up, rubbing his face before slipping out of bed and pulling on a hoodie. âYouâre getting pretzels.â
You sat up, watching him. The feeling of guilt starting to prick at your gut. âMatt, you donât have toââ
He held up a hand, silencing you. âIâm not running out to some chain store. Iâm making them for you, and theyâre going to be better than anything youâd buy.â he said softly, turning to navigate through the room until he made his way out the door. You slipped out of bed yourself, slipping your slippers on as you followed behind.
You followed him to the kitchen, watching as he moved with sleepy but determined precision. He mixed flour, yeast, and water, kneading the dough with steady hands. After letting it rest, he shaped it into perfect twists, brushing them with butter and popping them into the over that was already heated.
The oven filled the kitchen with a warm, toasty aroma. Matt yawned but didnât stop, whisking up a cheese sauce as the pretzels baked. When he finally pulled them out, their golden-brown color made your mouth water. He quickly sprinkled the coarse salt on top of them, then putting the cheese sauce into a bowl before plating it.
âFresh and homemade,â he said, setting a plate in front of you. âWhat do you think?â
Quickly you dipped a piece into the cheese sauce and took a bite, moaning in delight. âThese are amazing. Youâre amazing.â
Matt chuckled, kissing your forehead. âAnything for my girls.â
002 - Pancakeâs
It was the middle of the week, and the world was going about its day â but all you could think about were pancakes. Specifically, fluffy, golden pancakes topped with fresh berries and whipped cream. But you didnât want just any pancakes; you wanted Mattâs pancakes.
When he came home from the bakery, you greeted him with an almost guilty expression. âHey, babeee.â you sang, dragging out the pet name as you looked at him.
âWhatâs up?â he asked, setting his bag down and pulling you into a hug. His arms were strong and comforting, his clothes still smelling like the bakery which only triggered your craving even more.
Your face was pressed against his chest as you smiled. âI really want pancakes,â you blurted out against him, pulling back to tilt your head up.
Matt grinned. âPancakes?â he teased, bringing his face down to press his lips against your temple in a soft kiss. When he pulled back, he smiled down at you. âI think i can do that baby.â
And soon enough, you followed him into the kitchen, watching as he tied on his favorite apron. He grabbed ingredients with practiced ease, pouring flour, sugar, and buttermilk into a mixing bowl. He whisked the batter until it was smooth and poured it onto a sizzling griddle.
You were always amazed at how easy it was for him to make such things in quick time â watching as Matt flipped the pancakes with precision. You sat there with your head in one of your hands, the other rubbing your swollen belly.
You loved watching him in his own environment, how happy he got even if it was to make the things you wanted. Soon enough, he plated a stack, layering them with berries and a generous swirl of whipped cream. Then, just because he knew you so well, he drizzled a little maple syrup over the top.
When he set the plate in front of you, your stomach practically growled. âThese look better than a restaurantâs,â you said, digging in, groaning as the food hit your tastebuds.
âI love you so much.â you said, your words muffled by a bite of food. Matt chuckled, âI love you too baby..both of you.â he said, resting a hand against your stomach as you continued to eat.
003 - Cookieâs
You were curled up on the couch one evening, enjoying the show you had turned on the tv. Your hands instinctively rubbing small circles across your belly, gasping softly when you would feel the soft flutters and kicks against your hands.
When the craving hit: warm, gooey chocolate chip cookies â You could almost taste the melty chocolate and buttery dough, the thought consuming your mind. But, you wanted Mattâs homemade cookies.
Your head turned in the direction to where Matt was sitting, his nose buried in the pages of a book. âMatt baby?â you spoke, the sudden noise startling him slightly, making him look up from his book.
He gently set the book down with a knowing smile. âYeah sweetheart?â he said, slowly getting up and making his way over to you, crouching in front of your sitting figure. âCan you make cookies?..but not any kind, chocolate chip ones?â you asked shyly â it was still hard to ask for things a little.
Matt nodded, leaning forward and pressing a kiss to your stomach. âOf course i can baby, anything for you.â Without another word, he got up and headed to the kitchen.
You stayed in your spot on the couch, too warm and comfortable to move and the thought of ruining your comfort made you cringe. You could hear the sound of bowls and trays clinking, along with measuring cups and ingredients being poured into the bowls.
As the cookies started to bake, the smell filled the house, making your mouth water. âYou should bottle that scent,â you teased as you spoke in the direction of the kitchen, loud enough for him to hear you. âIâd wear it as perfume.â
Mattâs laughter filtered into the living room, the sound of him pulling the tray out of the oven came right along with it. A few moments laster, he came back into the living room, holding a tray of breath golden brown cookies that looked delicious.
âBe careful baby, theyâre still kind of hot.â he warned, and you acknowledged it, making sure to blow the cookie off before taking a bite out of it. The chocolate oozed, melting away in the warmth of your mouth.
âOh my god,â you said, closing your eyes. âThese are better than I imagined.â
âGood,â Matt said, leaning down to steal a bite from your cookie. âBecause I made enough to last you through the week.â
004 - Mac and Cheese
The rain pattered softly against the windows, casting a cozy gray light over the living room. You were curled up on the couch, wrapped in a blanket, but no amount of cozy could compete with the craving that had been building for hours: mac and cheese. Not just any mac and cheeseâMattâs mac and cheese. The kind that was creamy, cheesy, and baked with that perfectly crispy breadcrumb topping. Just thinking about it made your stomach rumble.
Matt walked into the room, drying his hair with a towel from showering just moments ago. He noticed the way you were staring out the window, looking distracted.
âWhatâs going on in that pretty head of yours?â he asked, leaning against the arm of the couch.
You sighed, giving him a sheepish smile. âI want your baked mac and cheese.â
His face lit up, his grin soft and knowing. âMac and cheese, huh?â
âYeah,â you admitted, shifting in your seat. âBut only the baked one with the crunchy topping. You make it the best.â
âWell,â he said, pulling the blanket off your lap and giving your belly a quick rub, âyouâre lucky I love you, because I wasnât planning on cooking today. But how can I say no to my girls?â
You followed him into the kitchen, settling at the counter as he began pulling out ingredients. Watching Matt cook was always mesmerizing â he moved with such precision, each movement purposeful and confident. He tied on his apron and shot you a playful wink before getting to work.
First, he boiled a pot of water and tossed in the pasta, his favorite brand of elbow macaroni. While that cooked, he set up a saucepan to make the cheese sauce. You watched as he melted butter, whisked in flour to create a roux, and then gradually poured in milk, his wrist moving smoothly as the sauce thickened.
âThis is where the magic happens,â he said, grinning as he reached for blocks of cheese. He grated a mix of sharp cheddar, mozzarella, and Parmesan, folding them into the sauce with care. The cheese melted into silky, golden perfection, and he dipped a spoon in for a taste.
âWant to try?â he asked, holding the spoon out to you.
You leaned forward, blowing on the sauce before tasting it. The richness of the cheese mixed with the creamy texture made your eyes close in satisfaction. âThatâs amazing,â you murmured, licking your lips.
Matt chuckled. âGood. Itâs about to get better.â
Once the pasta was drained, he tossed it into the cheese sauce, folding it together until every piece was coated. The kitchen filled with the mouthwatering smell of melted cheese as he poured the mixture into a baking dish. Then came your favorite part: the topping. Matt mixed breadcrumbs with a little melted butter and a pinch of Parmesan, sprinkling it evenly over the top.
âThis is what makes it the best,â he said, smoothing out the topping with the back of a spoon.
Into the oven it went, and the wait felt like an eternity. The two of you stood in the kitchen, chatting about your day, but your eyes kept flicking to the oven, waiting for the top to turn golden and crispy.
Finally, the timer dinged, and Matt pulled the dish out with a flourish. The mac and cheese bubbled at the edges, the breadcrumbs perfectly golden. He set it on the counter, letting it cool for a moment before serving you a bowl.
âCareful, itâs hot,â he warned, sliding the bowl toward you.
You didnât care about the heat. You dug your fork in, pulling up a cheesy, crispy bite and blowing on it quickly before popping it into your mouth. The combination of creamy pasta and crunchy topping was everything youâd dreamed of. You let out a satisfied groan, resting your hand on your belly. âMatt, this is ridiculous. How are you this good?â
He leaned against the counter, watching you with a smug grin. âYears of practice â and a little extra love just for you.â
You took another bite, savoring it before speaking. âI donât think Iâve ever loved you more than I do right now.â
Matt laughed, reaching over to brush a kiss to your temple. âGood. Because I plan on spoiling you like this for the rest of our lives.â
That night, curled up on the couch with Matt beside you and a second helping of mac and cheese in your bowl, you couldnât help but think how lucky you were. It wasnât just about the foodâit was about the love and care behind every bite. And with Matt, there was no shortage of that.
Š strnilolover
a/n : ik this is a little different but this was the only way i could see it in my head. also i was going to write a 5th one but then didnât. but enjoy these!!
#áŻâ
strnilolover#áŻâ
strnilolover !bakery owner matt#matt sturniolo#matthew sturniolo#matt sturniolo x you#matt sturniolo x reader#matthew sturniolo x you#matthew sturniolo x reader#matt sturniolo fluff#matt sturniolo imagine#matt x reader#matthew bernard sturniolo#matt stuniolo fanfic#matthew sturniolo imagine#matthew sturniolo fluff#matthew sturniolo fanfic#sturniolo#sturniolo triplets#sturniolo triplets x reader#sturniolo fanfic#sturniolo x reader#sturniolo imagine#matt sturniolo fanfic#sturniolo fluff#sturniolo triplets fluff#fluff#baking#pregnancy#pregnancy cravings#sturniolo fandom
120 notes
¡
View notes
Text
Good Neighbours: Chapter 1
NEW SERIES!!! i know yall are still waiting for the next chapter of guns and roses its still in the worksss
no warnings, slow burn - reader is 24, joel is in his mid 40s
The apartment was eerily quiet, the kind of silence that presses heavy against your chest. The space that had once been your sanctuary now feels cold and lifeless, stripped of everything that made it yours.
Boxes are stacked against the walls, their edges frayed from too much tape and too little care. The bare floors creak under your steps, each sound echoing like a reminder of how empty this place has become. Your eyes linger on the window by the fire escape, the view of the city you used to love now feeling distant, like it belongs to someone else entirely.
Chicago had been your dream. The bustling streets, the never-ending noise, the late nights at cramped bars with friends, and the early mornings at the publishing house, fueled by coffee and ambition. It was everything youâd wantedâuntil it wasnât.
Your life here didnât fall apart all at once; it unraveled slowly, piece by piece. The first crack was the breakup, a betrayal that still feels like a sucker punch every time you think about it. Three years with someone who looked you in the eye and lied. Someone who had the audacity to cheat on you with your ex-best friend.
That revelation shattered something deep inside you, leaving a hollow ache you couldnât quite fill. You cried for weeks, the kind of crying that leaves your chest raw and your pillow soaked, until eventually, even your tears gave up. When that ended, it took more than just your relationshipâit took the version of yourself who believed in happy endings.
Then came the job. Or rather, the lack of it. Months of feeling distracted and unsteady after the breakup led to a mistake on a project too big to recover from. You were let go with a sympathetic smile and a box of your things, the kind of professional pity that only makes the sting worse. With no savings to fall back on and no one to catch you, you were forced to face the one option you had left: starting over. Somewhere far away from all of this.
Thatâs how you ended up on the phone with Uncle Ray, the one steady, no-nonsense presence in your life. When he offered you a place to stay in Texas, you hesitated at firstâwhat did you know about small towns, about fixing cars and country music and people who knew your name before you even introduced yourself?
But you didnât have much of a choice. A fresh start sounded like the only thing that might save you from drowning in everything youâd lost.
đ â§âË â
đ â§âË â
đ â§âË â
đ â§âË â
đ â§âË â
đ â§âË â
đ â§âË â
đ â§âË â
đ â§âË â
đ â§âË â
đ â§âË â
You stood outside the airport, feeling entirely out of place as sweat clung to your skin. You hadnât expected it to be this hot, the kind of heat that seemed to cling to you, making the air feel heavier.
Tugging at the hem of your shirt, you scrolled through your phone mindlessly, the notifications blurring together as you tried to distract yourself from the awkwardness of waiting. Then, you heard itâa low rumble that grew louder with every second, the unmistakable sound of a truckâs engine.
Looking up, you spotted it, an old Ford pickup that had seen better days but still rumbled along with purpose. Uncle Ray was behind the wheel, his grin wide as he pulled up to the curb. He climbed out, his arms open as he approached you.
"Hey, kiddo," he greeted warmly, pulling you into a hug that smelled faintly of motor oil and aftershave. He felt solid, familiar, and for a moment, you allowed yourself to relax into it.
"Hey," you returned, your voice softer than you intended.
"You ready to head home?" he asked, leaning back to give you an appraising look.
Home. The word felt foreign, strange on your tongue, but you nodded anyway, forcing a small smile. "Yeah, Iâm ready."
The truckâs interior was worn and weathered, the seats cracked in placesâa surprising sight considering Uncle Ray was a mechanic. Yet, it carried a charm all its own, a lived-in feel that spoke of countless miles and stories etched into every scuff and tear. As you settled in, pressing your back against the sun-warmed vinyl, Uncle Ray climbed in beside you, his fingers deftly adjusting the stubborn air conditioner until it rattled to life with a sigh.
The scenery outside was nothing like Chicago. Gone were the towering buildings and chaotic traffic, replaced by open stretches of land that seemed to go on forever. Fields of green, the occasional barn, and roads that seemed to shimmer under the weight of the heat. The town came into view slowly, a scattering of small businesses, a diner with a flickering neon sign, and houses spaced far enough apart to feel lonely.
You thought about the last time youâd seen Uncle Ray. Years ago, heâd taken you fishing on one of his rare visits up north. Heâd been the same thenâchill, a little chubby, always ready with a story that had you laughing until your stomach hurt.
"You holding up okay?" he asked, his eyes darting to you briefly as the truck slowed to take a turn.
"Yeah," you lied, your voice barely above a whisper.
When you finally reached his neighborhood, you leaned forward, taking it all in. The houses were modest but well-kept, each with a wide porch and a patch of green that looked as though it had been freshly mowed. Kids played on the sidewalks, their laughter echoing in the warm air. It was the kind of neighborhood where people probably knew everyoneâs name and said hello every morning.
Uncle Ray pulled into the driveway of a double-story house with faded blue shutters and a swing on the front porch. The lawn was dotted with a few wildflowers.
"Here we are," Uncle Ray announced, cutting the engine. "Home sweet home."
You stepped out of the truck, the scent of freshly cut grass and something sweetâmaybe honeysuckleâfilling the air.
As you reached for the first overstuffed suitcase, your gaze drifted to the houses next door. Neatly trimmed lawns, colorful flowers in hanging baskets, and wide porches with rocking chairs. It was idyllic, picturesque evenâa world away from Chicago's cramped apartments and noisy streets.
Your new neighbors.
It was strange being back in suburbia, where people probably waved over fences and borrowed sugar like a scene straight out of an old movie. In Chicago, you hardly saw the people next to you.
Sure, youâd hear them: the clattering of keys as they stumbled in after a late night, the thud of their running shoes as they left for an early workout. But no one lingered for niceties or exchanged cheerful "good mornings" like they probably did here.
You were lost in your thoughts, trying to reconcile this new reality, when you heard a low chuckle from the front of the truck. Uncle Ray was leaning against the hood, talking animatedly to someone.
His laughter carried easily in the warm, sticky air, a sound youâd always found comforting. Curious, you craned your neck, trying to catch a glimpse of who he was talking to.
Thatâs when you saw him.
He stood tall, broad shoulders casting a shadow that stretched over the gravel driveway. His hands rested on his hips in a way that made him look like he owned the space around him, completely at ease. He wore a plain t-shirt, faded from too many washes, stretched just enough to hint at the strength beneath.
His jeans hung low on his hips, worn at the knees, and scuffed boots completed the look. He wasnât tryingâGod, he wasnât even tryingâbut the way he carried himself made it hard to look away.
He had to be in his mid-40s, the faintest streaks of silver catching in his dark hair, but that only made him more handsome. Ruggedly so, in a way that felt deeply unfair.
"There she is," Uncle Ray called, catching you staring. He waved you forward, his grin wide. "Câmere, kiddo. Meet our neighbor."
Reluctantly, you abandoned your luggage and crossed the driveway. Every step felt heavier under Joelâs gazeâor Mr. Miller, as Uncle Ray had introduced himâbut when you got closer, you noticed his eyes. Warm, earthy brown and piercing all at once, like he could see straight through you.
"This is my niece," Uncle Ray said, clapping a hand on your shoulder. "Sheâs staying with me for a little while. And this here," he motioned toward the man, "is Mr. Miller. Lives right next door."
"Nice to meet you, darlinâ," Joel said, his voice low and smooth, with a Southern drawl that seemed to settle into your bones.
Oh, right. The pet names. Sweetheart, honey, darlinââyouâd heard them at least fifteen times since your plane landed, each one dripping with charm. But coming from him, as his hand reached out to envelop yours in a firm, calloused grip, it felt different. Better. You liked it more than you cared to admit.
"Nice to meet you, Mr. Miller," you replied, your voice softer than you intended. His hand was rough and large, making yours feel almost laughably small.
He shook his head, the faintest smirk tugging at his lips. "Call me Joel, please. Mr. Miller makes me feel like I oughta be signing up for a retirement home."
You couldnât help it; you laughed. A genuine laugh that bubbled out before you could stop it. He smiled at that, a small, almost imperceptible curve of his lips, but it was there. You noticed.
Uncle Ray, ever the social one, leaned in conspiratorially, a sly grin on his face. "Hey, Joel, howâs Sarah? Sheâs whatâ23 now? Same age as this one," he added, nudging you lightly with his elbow, as if you were part of some inside joke you hadnât been let in on.
"I'm 24," you said, the words slipping out before you could stop yourself. For some reason, you thought it might make you sound more mature in front of the very much older man standing before you. Immediately, you regretted itâlike he needed to know or cared about the one-year gap.
"Same difference," Uncle Ray said with a wave of his hand, completely unbothered.
But Joel raised an eyebrow, a flicker of amusement passing through his dark eyes.
"Sheâs good," Joel said, "Working over at the diner, keeping herself busy."
You must have furrowed your brows because Joel caught it immediately. "Sarahâs my daughter," he said, clarifying before you had to ask.
"Oh," you said, feeling a little silly.
Of course, he had a family. He probably had a wife, too. Your gaze drifted toward his house, half-expecting to see her step outsideâa vision of blonde hair and a warm, effortless smile. The kind of woman who bakes cookies from scratch, smells like vanilla and sunshine, and waves cheerfully to the neighbors. Maybe there was even a golden retriever named Benji, lounging inside on the couch, completing the perfect picture.
"Iâd love to meet her," you offered, trying to mask the pang of disappointment you didnât fully understand. "I donât really know anyone here yet."
Plus, my ex-best friend kinda betrayed me by sleeping with my boyfriend, so I could really use some new friends, you thought bitterly, the memory flaring for a moment before you shoved it back down.
"Course, she'd love that" Joel replied easily, his tone warm. "Yâall are coming over tomorrow for the barbecue, right?"
"Course," Uncle Ray said, already moving toward the house as his phone buzzed loudly in his pocket. "Wouldnât miss it. Joel makes the best ribs in town," he called over his shoulder with a quick smile.
Then his expression shifted as he glanced at the screen. "Sorry, itâs workâI gotta take this," he muttered, answering the call with a distracted wave before disappearing inside.
And just like that, it was just you and Joel.
You stood there, awkward and unsure, while he seemed entirely at ease, hands still resting on his hips. He had a way about himâcalm, confident, charismatic.
"You need help with your bags?" he asked, tilting his head toward the suitcases youâd abandoned.
"Oh," you blinked, realizing youâd completely forgotten about them. "No, I should be fine."
Joelâs gaze shifted to the two enormous suitcases that were clearly over the weight limit, and he raised a brow, the corner of his mouth twitching like he was holding back a laugh. "You sure about that?"
Before you could protest, he was already moving, lifting one suitcase with ease and hoisting it into his arms like it weighed nothing. You couldnât help but notice the way his bicep flexed, the fabric of his t-shirt pulling taut as he carried the weight effortlessly. It was distracting, the kind of subtle strength that you knew he wasnât showing offâit was just there, in every deliberate movement.
"You pack bricks in here or somethinâ?" he asked, his tone light and teasing, as he glanced back over his shoulder. That faint smirk tugged at his lips, like heâd caught you in the act of staring, though he didnât say it outright.
Your cheeks burned instantly. "No, I justâuh, I guess I overpacked," you stammered, trying and failing to sound unaffected.
He chuckled, low and warm, shaking his head as he grabbed the second suitcase, hefting it just as effortlessly as the first. "Just teasin' darlin" he said simply, his voice steady, but something about the way he said itâcalm and self-assuredâleft your stomach fluttering.
This was going to be a problem.
Your cheeks burned, and you hoped the heat of the day would mask the blush creeping across your face. "Thanks," you mumbled, biting back a smile.
He carried the second suitcase up the porch and set it down with a satisfied nod. "There. Easy enough." He turned back to you, his gaze holding yours for a second longer than necessary.
"Well," he said, his voice low and steady, "Welcome to Texas." Your name rolled off his tongue in that unmistakable drawl, each syllable slow and deliberate, like he was tasting it.
It settled in the air between you, making your knees feel just a little weaker, your chest tightening in a way that you refused to acknowledge.
You swore he gave you a once-over before he strode back toward his house, his boots crunching against the gravel. Just before he reached his door, he glanced over his shoulder and tipped his head.
"See you tomorrow," he said, and then he was gone, leaving you standing there with your heart doing something entirely inconvenient in your chest.
đ â§âË â
đ â§âË â
đ â§âË â
đ â§âË â
đ â§âË â
đ â§âË â
đ â§âË â
đ â§âË â
đ â§âË â
đ â§âË â
đ â§âË â
After dinnerâa greasy but satisfying burger and fries from the local dinerâyou finally settled into your room. It was modest, with a bed tucked into the corner and walls painted a soft beige. A worn wooden dresser sat against one wall, and the faint scent of lavender lingered in the air from a small sachet tucked into the bedside drawer. It wasnât much, but it was cozy enough.
What caught your attention, though, was the window. It faced the backyard, and as you peered out, you realized it looked straight into Joelâs. The same backyard youâd be standing in tomorrow night for the barbecue.
The space was neat, with a patio table and chairs under a faded umbrella, a small grill parked in the corner, and string lights dangling above. You could imagine it alreadyâlaughter, the smoky scent of ribs, and Joel moving easily through it all, a beer in hand and that rugged smile.
Shaking off the thought, you flopped back onto the bed, the mattress letting out a soft creak under your weight. With your phone in your hand you unlocked the screen and hesitated for a moment. Your fingers opened Instagram hovering over the search bar before typing: J-o-e-l M-i-l-l-e-r.
You werenât a stalkerâyou told yourself that twice as you pressed search. You just wanted to know more about him. Maybe seeing his wife, his family, would yank your head out of the ridiculous fantasies that had started creeping in since the moment heâd carried your suitcase like it weighed nothing.
Nothing.
The results came up empty, just a scattering of people who were very obviously not the Joel Miller you were looking for. You sighed, biting your lip, and switched apps.
Facebook. He was olderâhe probably wasnât on Instagram anyway.
Jackpot. There it wasâa profile with a photo that looked like it had been taken years ago. Joel stood with a much younger girl, who you assumed was Sarah, all teeth and curly hair, her arms flung around his neck as he smiled faintly at the camera. You couldnât help but smile at the sight. It was sweetâsimple. A glimpse of him you hadnât expected.
You scrolled further, the glow of the screen lighting up your face in the dim room. There were more photos: Joel and Sarah on vacation by a lake, Joel in construction gear with a hard hat tucked under one arm, Joel standing next to what looked like an old truck, his hand resting on Sarahâs shoulder as she beamed up at him.
But there was no wife. No wedding photos, no anniversary posts, nothing to suggest she existed. Huh, you thought to yourself, your brow furrowing slightly.
You locked your phone and tossed it onto the bed beside you, staring up at the ceiling. Maybe it didnât mean anything. Maybe he was just private, or maybeâŚ
You tried to push the thought from your mind, but it lingered, the possibilities swirling in your head far longer than you wanted to admit.
đ â§âË â
đ â§âË â
đ â§âË â
đ â§âË â
đ â§âË â
đ â§âË â
đ â§âË â
đ â§âË â
đ â§âË â
đ â§âË â
đ â§âË â
"You ready, kid?" Uncle Rayâs voice boomed from downstairs.
"Yeah, just one sec!" you called back, turning to the mirror one last time. You smoothed your hands over the fabric of the white halter dress youâd chosen, the hem brushing mid-thigh. It was simple, breezyâperfect for the Texas heatâbut there was a part of you that wanted to look good. Not over the top, but enough to feel confident. Enough to catch someoneâs attention.
As you descended the stairs, Uncle Ray was balancing a platter of meat and a case of beers, muttering something about forgetting the tongs.
"Iâll take these," you offered, grabbing the beers from him before he could protest.
"Thanks, kid," he said with a grateful smile.
The short walk to Joelâs house felt longer than it should have, anticipation bubbling under your skin. You werenât sure why you were nervous. Maybe it was the thought of finally seeing inside Joelâs house, the place he lived.
Maybe even meeting his wife. If he has one, a voice in your head whispered, though you tried to ignore it.
Uncle Ray knocked on the door, the sound heavy against the wood. Moments later, Joelâs unmistakable voice called, "Cominâ!"
When the door opened, your breath caught in your throat.
If it was possible for him to look even better than yesterday, somehow, he managed it. His hair was slightly tousled, damp at the edges, and there was a sheen of sweat glistening on his tanned skinâno doubt from working outside at the barbecue. He wore a faded gray t-shirt that clung just enough to hint at the strength beneath and a pair of jeans.
Your gaze lingered a second too long, and as if sensing it, his eyes flicked to yours, a small smirk tugging at his lips. You swallowed subconsciously, the motion betraying you. He noticed.
"Ray," Joel greeted warmly, clapping your uncle on the back. "Just through there to the kitchen," he said, nodding toward the hallway for the meat Uncle Ray was carrying.
"Got it," your uncle replied, brushing past him and leaving you standing awkwardly in the doorway, the beers still in your hands.
Why did you feel so out of place? Why were you so... flustered?
"Hey, sweetheart," Joel said, his voice dropping into that low, his arm leaning against the doorframe, his familiar drawl sending warmth cascading through you. He motioned to the beers in your arms. "These for me?"
It took you a second to process what he meant. "The beers?" you asked, dumbly, earning a quiet chuckle from him.
"Yeah," he said, amused, his lips curving into a faint grin. "The beers."
"Oh. Yeah," you said quickly, feeling heat rise to your cheeks.
"Here, Iâll take âem off your hands," he offered, stepping closer. As his fingers brushed yours, a spark zipped through you, quick and unbidden. You glanced up, catching his eyes just as they shiftedâflickering down for the briefest moment.
Thatâs when you realized where he was looking. You followed his gaze instinctively, and your heart stuttered. The condensation from the beers had soaked into your dress, dampening the fabric over your chest. You could see the faint outline of your pink lace bra through the thin material.
Joel murmured something under his breath, so quiet you couldnât make it out. His jaw tightened as his gaze snapped back to your face, his expression carefully neutral.
Your cheeks burned, your entire body flushing a deep crimson. But Joelâever the gentlemanâpretended not to notice. His eyes didnât stray, not once. Instead, he made steady eye contact, his tone smooth and unaffected as he said, "Hey, come on in. You can meet Sarah. Iâll introduce you two."
He stepped back, holding the door open wider for you to enter. His voice remained calm, his movements composed, but there was a tension in his posture, a stiffness that hadnât been there before.
You ducked your head, mumbling a quiet "thanks" as you stepped inside, the air-conditioned coolness of his house brushing against your overheated skin.
Joelâs voice followed you, steady but quieter now. "Sheâs out back helpinâ with the food. Youâll like her."
You nodded, trying to focus on anything other than the fact that Joel Miller had just seen far more of you than youâd intendedâand that the way he handled it, with his quiet restraint and piercing eyes, somehow made it even worse. Or maybe better. You werenât sure anymore.
đ â§âË â
đ â§âË â
đ â§âË â
đ â§âË â
đ â§âË â
đ â§âË â
đ â§âË â
đ â§âË â
đ â§âË â
đ â§âË â
đ â§âË â
Sarah was incredibleâher energy was infectious, the way her eyes lit up when she spoke made you feel like youâd known her for years. She had Joel's kind eyes and smile. Conversation flowed easily, laughter punctuating every other sentence as you sat in the shade of the patio, the warm buzz of music and mingling voices filling the air.
"So, you moved from Chicago?" Sarah asked, taking a sip of her beer, her head tilted curiously. You nodded, but before you could answer, she grinned. "What gives? Iâd do anything to get out of Texas, but I think my dad would have a heart attack if I tried."
You laughed softly at her playful tone, but inside, your heart clenched, the real reason for your move bubbling to the surface. The betrayal of the two people you had trusted most in the worldâyour boyfriend and your best friendâstill stung like an open wound. For a moment, you thought about answering with one of the rehearsed lies youâd been telling people since it happened. Something casual, vague, easy.
But there was something in Sarahâs eyesâkindness that felt so effortless, so genuineâthat made you hesitate. She wasnât prying; she just seemed... safe. Your lip caught between your teeth as you glanced down, the words tumbling out before you could stop them.
"Well, uh, my boyfriend cheated on me," you said quietly, the weight of it easing slightly as you said it aloud. Sarahâs eyes widened, but before she could respond, you added, "With my best friend."
Her gasp was immediate, her beer nearly slipping from her hand as she leaned forward. "Oh my God. Are you serious? What fucking assholes!" she said, her voice sharp with indignation.
You managed a small, sad smile. "Yeah. So, uh, here I am, trying to figure out what to do with my life. Honestly, I donât have a clue."
Sarahâs expression softened, and without hesitation, she reached over to rub your shoulder, her touch warm and comforting. "Hey," she said firmly, "theyâre both idiots for doing anything that got you out of their lives. Iâve known you for, like, an hour, and I can already tell how stupid that was."
Her words hit you harder than you expected, a warmth spreading in your chest as the corners of your mouth lifted into a genuine smile. "Youâre too sweet," you murmured, your voice soft but sincere.
"Iâm serious," she insisted, her eyes narrowing slightly as if daring you to argue. "If they couldnât see what they had, thatâs on them, not you."
For the first time in a while, you felt something shiftâjust a littleâa glimmer of hope that maybe, just maybe, you were in the right place to start over. "Thanks, Sarah," you said, meaning every word.
"Anytime," she said, raising her beer with a grin. "And hey, if you need someone to curse them out over the phone, just say the word. Iâm really good at it."
You laughed, a sound that felt lighter than it had in months. "Iâll keep that in mind."
đ â§âË â
đ â§âË â
đ â§âË â
đ â§âË â
đ â§âË â
đ â§âË â
đ â§âË â
đ â§âË â
đ â§âË â
đ â§âË â
đ â§âË â
You sat by yourself now, nursing a drink as you watched the scene unfold around you. Sarah had disappeared into the kitchen to help with something, leaving you to take in the warm buzz of conversation and laughter that filled the air.
People were scattered in groups, mingling, sharing stories, and you couldnât help but smile at how⌠nice it all felt. Like being part of a community, even if only for a little while.
It hadnât gone unnoticed by youâthe absence of a partner in Joelâs life. No photos, no affectionate glances exchanged with a woman across the yard, no lady hanging off his arm.
Youâd been looking, admittedly more than you should have. And youâd noticed another thing, too: his left hand. Bare. No wedding ring, no tell-tale tan line suggesting one had been there recently.
Out of the corner of your eye, you noticed movement, and when you glanced up, Joel was walking toward you, his figure outlined by the afternoon sun. One hand lifted to shield his eyes from the glare as he stopped in front of you, his expression as unreadable as ever.
"Hey," he said, his voice low but carrying easily over the noise around you.
"Hey," you replied, sitting up a little straighter.
"You havinâ fun?" he asked, his tone casual but his gaze steady, like he genuinely wanted to know.
"Yeah," you said, nodding. "Sarahâs the best. Sheâs been really great."
His lips twitched into a grin, one of those subtle ones that made you feel like youâd earned it. "I figured you two would hit it off."
There was a brief pause, a flicker of something in his eyes as he seemed to consider his next words. Finally, he nodded toward the grill. "Hey, you, uh⌠wanna help me out with the grill?"
"Oh," you said, caught off guard but smiling nonetheless. "Yeah, sure." You stood quickly, brushing your hands on your dress. "I donât know how much help Iâll be, though."
"Thatâs alright," he said, already turning to walk back to the grill, his voice carrying a hint of teasing warmth. "Iâll teach ya."
You followed him, the scent of charcoal and smoked meat growing stronger as you approached. When you reached the grill, Joel handed you a pair of tongs, his fingers brushing yours briefly as he did.
"Alright," he said, stepping beside you, his shoulder close enough to brush yours if either of you moved even a little. "First rule: donât flip âem too much. Just let âem sit there for a bit. You flip too early, you lose all the good stuff."
You nodded, gripping the tongs tightly. "Got it. No premature flipping."
He chuckled at that, low and warm. "Exactly." He reached over, his hand lightly covering yours to guide the tongs. "Here, like this. Just slide it under real careful, and thenâ" He helped you flip one of the ribs, his movements steady, deliberate, his voice low in your ear.
"See? Easy," he said, stepping back but not too far, his hand lingering on the edge of the grill.
"Sure, when youâre helping," you replied with a small laugh, turning to glance up at him.
"Youâll get the hang of it," he said, his eyes meeting yours for just a beat longer than necessary before he looked back at the grill. "Soon enough, youâll be the one teachinâ me."
You laughed softly, shaking your head. "I donât think Iâll ever reach your level of grill mastery."
"Mastery, huh?" he teased, his grin widening slightly. "Youâre just sayinâ that âcause youâre tryinâ to get on my good side."
"Didnât realize you had a bad side," you said before you could stop yourself, the words slipping out light and teasing.
Your heart skipped a beat as you realized how they sounded.
This was so not youâflirting? With Joel? .You immediately regretted it, your stomach twisting as you replayed the words in your head. You made it weird, you thought, biting the inside of your cheek. He probably thinks youâre a freak.
Joelâs eyes flicked back to yours, his grin softening into something quieter, almost contemplative. Then, as his gaze lingered, something shiftedâsomething darker, deeper that wasnât there before. His eyes traveled, not overtly, but enough to make you feel the heat of his attention, before they settled back on yours, steady and unreadable.
"Guess youâll have to wait and see," he murmured, his voice low and rough, the kind of tone that felt like it carried a secret meant only for you. It was so quiet, so deliberate, that if the laughter and hum of conversation around you had been any louder, you might have missed it entirely.
Your breath caught for a moment, a flicker of uncertainty threading through your thoughts. Was heâ? No, he couldnât be. Could he? The weight of his gaze, the subtle shift in his demeanor, it all felt different now. Like the casual, teasing banter had taken a step into something elseâsomething charged.
You blinked, trying to shake the thought as your heart gave a traitorous thump against your ribs. Joelâs expression shifted back to something lighter, the corner of his mouth tugging into a small, almost amused smile, as if he knew exactly what you were thinking.
Before you could say anythingâask, deflect, do somethingâSarahâs voice called from the patio, pulling both of your gazes away. And just like that, the moment dissolved, leaving you standing there, wondering if youâd imagined the whole thing.
đ â§âË â
đ â§âË â
đ â§âË â
đ â§âË â
đ â§âË â
đ â§âË â
đ â§âË â
đ â§âË â
đ â§âË â
đ â§âË â
đ â§âË â
The rest of the evening unfolded like a whirlwind. Sarah had pulled you into the fold of her hometown friends, introducing you to a group of easygoing, lively people who made you feel like youâd known them for years.
They shared stories of growing up in the small town, teasing one another in a way only lifelong friends could, and you found yourself laughing more than you had in weeks. It was lovely, and for a while, you let yourself forget everything that had driven you here.
You hadnât seen Joel. Not since your brief moment at the grill. Uncle Ray had left earlier, muttering something about an emergency at the shopâa customer with car trouble that couldnât wait until morning. Heâd pressed the extra house key into your hand before he left, telling you to stay as long as you liked.
But now it was late, and most of the guests had filtered out. The once-lively backyard was quieter, the string lights casting soft, golden halos over the empty tables and half-finished drinks. You hugged Sarah goodbye at the door, a plate of leftovers in your hand that sheâd practically begged you to take.
"Seriously, come over anytime," she said, squeezing you tightly. "It was so nice meeting you."
"You too," you replied, genuinely meaning it as you hugged her back.
As you pulled away, you glanced around one last time, hoping to spot Joel, but he was nowhere to be seen. You shifted the plate in your hand and opened the door, stepping out into the cooler night air. The distant chirp of crickets filled the quiet, and you felt the weight of the day settling into your shoulders.
"Leavinâ without sayinâ goodbye?" a familiar voice drawled, stopping you mid-step.
You turned sharply, startled, to see Joel leaning casually against the doorway, arms crossed and his gaze fixed on you. His shirt sleeves were rolled up slightly, and his hair was mussed like heâd run a hand through it more than once. The soft glow of the porch light caught the sharp line of his jaw as he tilted his head slightly, a faint smirk tugging at his lips.
"What, I work you too hard?" he teased, his voice low and laced with that easy humor that made your stomach flutter.
You let out a surprised laugh, adjusting the plate in your hand. "I didnât know where you went," you said, feeling suddenly self-conscious under the weight of his gaze.
"Had to clean up a bit," he replied, straightening from the doorframe. "Didnât think youâd sneak out on me, though."
"I wasnât sneaking," you countered, smiling despite yourself.
Joelâs smirk widened slightly, his eyes catching yours in a way that made your pulse skip. "Good," he said simply, stepping closer until he was just a little too near, the space between you shrinking in a way that felt intentional. He glanced at the plate in your hand. "Sarah guilt you into takinâ that?"
"Of course," you said with a small laugh. "I didnât stand a chance."
He chuckled softly, the sound low and warm, before his gaze flicked back to yours. For a moment, neither of you moved, the quiet night wrapping around you like a cocoon. His expression softened, the teasing edge fading just slightly as he said, "Glad you came, though."
The way he said itâlow, steady, and deliberateâmade something in your chest tighten. You nodded, your voice quieter now. "Me too."
You turned toward the driveway, ready to head home, when Joel cleared his throat behind you. "Iâll, uh, walk you home," he said, his voice calm but steady enough to make you stop in your tracks.
Your eyebrows shot up in surprise. "Joel, itâs like three steps," you pointed out, gesturing toward your house practically next door.
"I know," he replied, his lips twitching into a faint smirk. "But here in Texas, us gentlemen protect our ladies."
Our ladies. The words hung in the air, heavier than they should have been, and you felt a sudden warmth rush to your cheeks. You knew he didnât mean it like thatânot like you were hisâbut still the idea made your stomach flip all the same.
"Okay," you murmured, the word barely audible as you started walking, Joel falling into step beside you.
You both walked slowly, the kind of unhurried pace that almost felt like stalling. Joelâs hands were stuffed deep into his pockets, his gaze flicking around the quiet neighborhood before landing back on you.
"So," he said, his voice easy but laced with curiosity, "how long you here for?"
You sighed softly, your fingers brushing the plate of leftovers Sarah had given you as you considered your answer. "I donât know," you admitted, glancing at him briefly. "Iâm here until I figure my shit out, pretty much."
Joel nodded, his expression thoughtful. The light from your porch illuminated the edges of his profile as he turned toward your house, his next words slipping out low and steady. "Well," he said, "letâs hope that takes a while, then."
Your breath hitched, his words landing like a soft knock against your chest. He said it so easily, so casually, but something about the way his voice dipped made it impossible to ignore. You felt the blush creeping up your neck, and for a moment, you couldnât bring yourself to look at him.
Joel stopped just short of following you up, rocking back slightly on his heels. He looked at you then, really looked at you, and the warmth in his gaze sent your heart into a full sprint.
"Good night," he said, his voice softer now, before turning on his heels. He walked away slowly, his hands still in his pockets, and you couldnât help but watch him until he disappeared into the shadows of his own porch.
You stood there for a moment, breathless and still, your mind replaying his words on a loop. The weight of them lingered, warm and undeniable, leaving you leaning against your door long after the night had fully settled around you.
Tag List:
@pedritospunk @ickearmn
#joel miller#joel miller x reader#ellie tlou#joel miller one shot#joel miller fanfiction#pedro pascal fanfic#pedro pascal#joel miller smut#joel miller fanfic#pedro pascal one shot#joel miller tlou#tlou fanfiction#the last of us hbo#tommy miller#tlou joel#tlou fic#pedro pascal smut#pedro pascal x reader#pedro pascal fanfiction#pedropascaledit#pedrohub
71 notes
¡
View notes
Text
wildflower chapter two - eddie munson
Eddie Munson x Henderson! female reader
Main Masterlist
Series Masterlist
Eddie Munson Masterlist
Summary:
Corroded Coffin performs their homecoming show in Hawkins, and mistakes are made.
Chapter Warnings:
Smut (18+), p in v, unprotected sex, drunk sex, underage drinking, secret baby
Word Count: 3.4k
A/N:
This next chapter was a long time coming, but I hope you guys enjoy!
â
The rest of the week was a blur. You hadnât thought of Eddie this much in over a year, and having him thrown back into your consciousness was like opening an old wound. You tried your best to push it out of your mind and keep yourself busy with work and chasing after Asher, but it was fruitless.
Steve and Robin were at your apartment Thursday night, the usual hangout since the three of you shared the night off. Asher was fresh out of his bath, dressed in his pajamas and sitting on the floor showing off his toy trains to Robin, who, to her credit, showed equal enthusiasm even on the 50th time of seeing the same Thomas the Tank Engine.
Steve and Robin had come armed with movies - these weekly hangouts usually turned into movie nights, especially when something new came into Family Video that one of them snatched up. Not that youâd complain.
âAlright, Ash. Time for bed,â you said, although the nearly 2 year old paid you no mind as he picked up Percy, the green train.
âYou heard her, buddy. Time for the trains to go back to the station,â Robin said, helping the toddler gather his toys.
Asher pouted, but he helped put the trains in his toy box anyway. Once the toys were cleaned up, you lifted him into your arms, heading into his bedroom. A fresh diaper and a kiss goodnight later, you turned the lights off and slowly closed the door behind you.
Back in the living room, you flopped down on the cheap couch with a deep sigh.
âWhatâs on your mind, Henderson?â Robin asked, still lounging on the carpet. âYouâve been in your head all week.â
Steve looked at her like she was dumb. âCorroded Coffin?â
Robin rolled her eyes at him. âAre you thinking about going?â
You sighed again, running a hand through your hair to push it out of your face. âI donât know. I donât know.â
Steve looked at you sympathetically. âYou knowâŚit might be good. You never got that closure. Even if you just want to go to throw a drink in his face.â
You bit back a grin at the idea. He deserved it, that was for sure. âI donât know. Maybe.â
âDo you think youâre going to wonder what if for the rest of your life if you donât go?â
Steveâs sudden sage words caught you off guard. You hated to admit he was right. After these two years of wondering what you had done wrong to deserve his abandonment, there were definitely still wounds deep inside that never had the chance to heal.
Maybe you did need to see him.
â
Saturday night, with Ash at your momâs house, you stared at yourself in the mirror. You couldnât believe that youâd let yourself be talked into this. Dressed in a short black skirt, tight top with a leather jacket over top, you felt like you were looking at your high school self again. Like nothing had ever changed. Like Eddie was going to walk up behind you at any moment and wrap his arms around your waist with a wink and a âLooking good, baby.â
âReady to go?â Steve asked as you walked back out into your living room. Steve and Robin wouldnât be blending into the crowd at The Hideout as well as you would, and the idea nearly made you laugh a little.
âI guess so,â you said. âIâm ready for a drink.â
The Hideout really wasnât much different than you remembered, besides the fact that it was absolutely packed full with a huge line out the door. It was surreal to see so many people wearing Corroded Coffin merch, the crowd absolutely buzzing with excitement.
Inside, you pushed your way through to the bar, Steve and Robin following close behind. You may still be a few months away from 21, but you knew that wouldnât matter.
âHey, Chris,â you greeted the bartender with a smile. He hadnât changed a bit in the past two years.
âWell! Long time no see,â Chris greeted, his face lighting up. He pushed three beers across the bar without having to be asked. âI should have known youâd be here to see your boy play.â
Your boy. You resisted a wince as you passed bottles to Steve and Robin and opened your own, taking a big swig. âYeah, of course.â
The crowd was intense. It had been a long time since youâd been in this scene - hell, it had been a long time since your nights had been more exciting than an episode of Sesame Street. Visually you fit in, but you still found yourself standing off to the side with your friends rather than joining the crowd of fans.
You downed your beer in no time and ordered another. You were already multiple beers in before the opening act even came on.
âAre you okay?â Steve asked, eyeing you as you popped open your fourth beer. âWe can leave if you donât want to do this.â
You shook your head. You were already here, you were going to do this. âIâm good,â you assured him, waving him off. He still eyed you warily, but didnât push it.
You barely paid any mind to the opening act. Sure, they were good, but you knew what you were waiting for. Your heart thundered wildly in your chest, although the nerves in your stomach were fading with every drink.
When the opening act left the stage, the change in atmosphere was palpable. The crowd began to chant and cheer, and then -
There they were.
Gareth walked out first, drumsticks in hand. You felt your breath catch in your throat - the memories came rushing back. The other guys followed behind, and then finally - Eddie.
Eddie sauntered out with a cocky grin and a hand up in a wave to the crowd, who were screaming so loud you thought your eardrums might burst. Your blood felt like ice, you didnât think your heart could beat any harder without killing you. He looked like himself, but there was something obviously different. He wore a tight pair of ripped jeans on his long legs, a Metallica tee with the same leather jacket he always wore. You hated how familiar it felt. He carried himself with the confidence of a real rockstar. You supposed thatâs what he was now.
He approached the microphone. âHello, Hawkins,â he drawled, and the cheers somehow grew even louder. A bra flew from the crowd and landed at his feet, and he reached down and picked it up with a chuckle, hanging it on the mic stand. You rolled your eyes.
âItâs good to be back in our hometown,â he continued, that grin still on his face. âYou guys made us what we are. We owe it all to you. We couldnât imagine ending the tour anywhere else.â
The crowd ate up every word. And Eddie looked like he reveled in the attention. He looked so natural on stage. He was living his dream, after all.
As Gareth hit his drum sticks together and the band started their first song, Eddie scanned the crowd. You had felt sure you, Steve, and Robin were far enough into the shadows on the sides that youâd be unnoticeable, but with that magnetism you two had always shared - Eddieâs eyes locked on yours.
He froze. The cocky facade dropped and his mouth parted in shock as you stared at each other. You felt dizzy all of a sudden, like you might pass out. Ever observant, Robin noticed immediately, eyes darting between you and Eddie. He nearly missed the opening line of the song before he jolted back to awareness.
âI need another drink,â you mumbled, pushing through the crowd and back to the bar.
You didnât slow down on the drinks as the show went on. Eddie was taking shots onstage, like he needed to feel numb just as bad as you did. By the end of their set, Eddie was drunk, yet he still managed to perform perfectly.
âThank you, Hawkins,â he slurred into the mic as the show ended. âNext roundâs on us for everyone!â
That set the crowd even wilder than they had been. The band exited the stage, and you pushed back through the crowd to the bar again, stumbling in your boots as the room tilted around you. You heard Steve calling your name from somewhere behind you, but you lost your friends in the crowd in your pursuit of yet another drink.
âOne more on my tab, Chris,â you slurred once you reached the bar.
âAdd her whole tab to mine,â an uncomfortably familiar voice came from behind you. âAnd another round of shots for me and the boys.â You felt chills across your skin as Chris nodded and pushed you another drink before he poured the alcohol into four shot glasses.
You saw his ringed hand reach forward and grab one of the glasses. You slowly turned to meet his eyes as he downed the shot, shooting you a smirk as he smacked it back down on the bar top.
âWell,â he slurred, his eyes just as glassy as your own. âHello again, beautiful.â
You were so drunk that you didnât even remember how he hurt you. How he abandoned you. You just saw Eddie, and your heart reached for him through your chest just like it always did.
âEddie,â you whispered, as if there was nothing else to say.
He kept smirking at you, his large hand landing on your upper back and then sliding down to rest on your hip. His eyes roamed over your outfit, drinking you in hungrily.
You didnât mind.
âIâve missed you,â he murmured, his hand squeezing your hip posessively and pulling you closer. Your head spun with the motion, and you werenât sure if it was from the alcohol or from Eddie himself.
âI missed you too,â you admitted, both to him and to yourself.
âWant me to take you home?â he asked, leaning forward, his voice a purr in your ear. It sent goosebumps across your skin.
Even in your drunken haze, you knew you shouldnât say yes. Eddie had done something truly shitty to you, and you had no intention of forgiving him that quickly, or maybe even at all. But he was just as intoxicating as the large amounts of alcohol in both of your systems, and you found yourself letting him lead you backstage and out the back door.
You were so drunk yourself that you hadnât even thought about whether Eddie could even drive in his state, but he ushered you into the back of a car with a man already sitting in the driverâs seat before sliding in beside you. His hand rested on your thigh as you told the man the address of your apartment, rising higher and higher until it was teasing under the hem of your skirt.
He pulled you into him as the car started moving. Your lips found each other like theyâd never been apart, and he kissed you hungrily, tasting like alcohol and cigarettes, but you didnât care.
Neither you nor Eddie seemed to care a single bit that there was a stranger in the front seat as an audience to the two of you all over each other. Your apartment wasnât far from the dive bar, and before you knew it you were stumbling out of the car hand in hand with Eddie, both of you giggling like it was 1985 again and you were just two kids in love.
It took you three attempts to unlock the front door of your apartment, your vision hazy and your brain even fuzzier from the feeling of Eddieâs hands all over you, pushing up your top right there in the hallway while he placed sloppy kisses against your neck and shoulders.
When the door finally opened, you barely had time to kick your boots off and drop your leather jacket before Eddie was pushing you up against the door, slamming it closed. You moaned against his lips as they devoured your own, his tongue exploring your mouth desperately. He pulled your top over your head and dropped it to the floor. Your lipstick was smeared across his face, and he wiped it off with the back of his hand.
âLook so fucking sexy,â Eddie mumbled as he moved in to attach his mouth to your neck, sucking love bites all across the skin. âIâve thought about you every day.â
You didnât have the brain power at the moment to process those words. The drinks had already taken all concepts of critical thought, but every moment of Eddieâs mouth and tongue against your neck drowned out coherent thought itself.
His hands lowered from your hips to the back of your bare thighs and he squeezed. You worked in tandem just like old times as you jumped up for him and he gripped your thighs as you wrapped your legs around his waist. You could feel how hard he was already through his jeans, pressed up against your core.
âWhereâs your bedroom?â he asked breathlessly, moving back to your lips.
âLast door down the hall,â you mumbled back, and then you were pulled away from the door as he walked down the hall, carrying you like you weighed nothing. He was sloppy, still drunk and knocking into the table in the hall, sending a picture frame falling to the (thankfully carpeted) floor.
He pushed the door open to your bedroom, and seconds later you landed on your back on your soft mattress. Eddieâs eyes were completely glazed over with lust, locked on yours as he kicked his shoes off and started unbuckling his belt. You watched him with equal hunger as he undid his tight jeans and pushed them to the floor, his excitement obvious through the material of his boxers. He leaned over the bed and reached behind you to unzip your skirt, pulling it down your body and leaving you in your bra and panties.
You pushed the jacket off his shoulders and grabbed onto the hem of his t-shirt, pulling it over his head and tossing it. His body looked the way you remembered it, the familiar lines and curves coming back to you as you roamed your hands over his soft skin like second nature.
âEddie,â you whined, pushing your hips up against his painfully hard erection. He hissed at the contact, his mouth trailing hot kisses down your neck and over your chest. He reached behind you and unclasped your bra, your nipples quickly pebbling in the cool air. His mouth moved to envelop one of your nipples, his hand attending to the other. He swirled his tongue around it, sucking on your tits as you arched beneath him.
It had been a while for you, honestly.
âFuck, need you so bad,â he muttered. He sat up on his knees, eyes raking over your body for only a moment before he reached for the hem of your panties. He pulled them down your legs quickly, urgently pushing his boxers down. His hard cock sprang free, already leaking precum. He wrapped his hand around the base, squeezing, another hiss leaving his lips.
He grabbed the backs of your thighs again, spreading your legs and pushing them up towards your chest to take in the sight of your pussy, glistening and ready for him. He muttered another âFuck,â under his breath.
He traced a finger through your folds, collecting your wetness on his finger and bringing it to his mouth. He moaned at the taste of you, just as sweet as he remembered.
He leaned back over your body, lining himself up at your entrance, not a single thought about protection going through either of your minds. He pushed in quickly, causing your back to arch and a gasp to fall from your lips, fingernails digging into Eddieâs shoulders as he stretched you intensely.
âToo big,â you managed to squeak out, which made Eddie chuckle against the skin of your neck.
âYou can take it,â he assured you, starting up a slow pace, although it pained him to do so. âYou always took it so well.â
It didnât take long for your body to remember his. The pain faded into pure pleasure within the minute, and then you were moving your hips along with his thrusts. Eddie noticed and picked up the pace of his hips, giving up on being careful and fucking into you with reckless abandon.
High moans spilled from your lips, your eyes falling closed as the feeling of him enveloped you completely. You could think of nothing but the pleasure he was providing with every press of his cockhead against that bundle of nerves deep inside you. Even after all this time, he knew exactly how to fuck you.
Eddieâs own grunts and groans were unashamed as he rutted into you with no real rhythm, drunkenly chasing his own release inside you. Somehow through the drunk and lust filled haze, he had the thought to reach down and rub tight circles on your clit, building that tightening feeling in your belly faster and faster.
âGâna cum,â you whined, your pussy tightening around his cock enough to make him moan even louder as he started fucking you even faster.
âYeah, princess, thatâs it, cum on my cock, just like that,â he babbled encouragement, his own release approaching rapidly. âFuck, yeah, all over my cock baby.â
Your orgasm crashed through you with the power of a fucking train, and your eyes rolled back, body trembling and pussy clenching around him over and over again as you chanted his name, sounding just like all his groupies at the concert.
Thatâs all Eddie needed to fall over the edge with a hissed âShit, shit!â and a low groan against your neck as he spilled inside of you, filling you deeply with ropes of his cum.
Once you were both spent, Eddie pulled out of you, rolling off and collapsing on the bed next to you. You both caught your breath. You wondered if you should say something, but the pull of sleep in both of your drunken minds was too strong. It wasnât long before you heard Eddieâs soft snores, before you were pulled under, too.
â
You were woken up by a pounding at your front door.
Still, your eyes opened slowly, adjusting to the light filtering through your bedroom windows through the pounding headache already plaguing you. Your heart stopped in your chest when you saw Eddieâs naked form still sleeping next to you.
Fuck, what did you do?
You jumped out of bed and pulled on a t-shirt and pair of sweatpants before walking into the living room before whoever was pounding on the door woke up your entire apartment complex.
You swung open the door, irritated, to find a panicked looking Steve standing there.
âJesus Christ,â he said when you opened the door. âYou just disappeared last night. I thought you got abducted or something.â
The guilt and emotions hit you as the full reality of what youâd done fell on your chest. âSteveâŚâ you started, unsure how to even explain yourself.
âHow did you even get home? You just went to the bar and-â Steve stopped cold, wide eyes trained at something over your shoulder.
Despite the dread in your stomach, you slowly turned, seeing Eddie standing in the hallway behind you, looking sheepish and dressed back in his jeans with no shirt.
âUh, hey,â he said, a hand running through his curls.
Steve slowly looked back at you. âWhat the fuck.â
You didnât even know what to say as you looked between the boys. Eddie looked down at the picture frame on the floor that had been knocked down last night.
âOh, shit,â he said, almost to himself. He leaned down and picked it up. âI, uh, might have knocked this over-â
He froze. And the second you realized what photo he was looking at, you did, too.
It was Asher. A recent portrait, The toddler sporting a huge gap-toothed grin, his big brown eyes and wild head of curls mirroring the man currently standing in your hallway.
Eddie stared at the photo, completely unmoving. You didnât even think you were breathing at this point. You could feel Steveâs presence behind you, everyone frozen waiting for someone to make a move.
He finally looked up slowly, eyes meeting yours with questions swirling inside that you didnât want to answer and he wasnât sure he wanted the answers to.
Eddie said your name softly, fear lacing his voice. âWhat is this?â
tag list
three of you it wouldnât let me tag, so if you requested to be on the list and you arenât here thatâs why! iâm sorry :(
@awkward00noodle @american-idiot-jpg @georgeweasleyslostearhq @fandom-princess-forevermore @emxxblog @hopesicle @hellv1ra @whimsiwitchy @avalon-wolf @kellsck @toomuchbucky @sashaphantomhive @losingmygrasponreality @the-disaster-in-waiting @eddiesgirl1944 @ashcal99
#eddie munson#eddie#stranger things#eddie munson x reader#eddie munson angst#eddie munson smut#eddie munson imagine#eddie munson blurb#eddie munson series#joseph quinn#keeryhours writes#wildflower#eddie munson x you#eddie munson oneshot#eddie munson x fem!reader#eddie stranger things#stranger things x reader#eddie munson x y/n#stranger things imagine#dad!eddie munson#stranger things angst#stranger things smut
88 notes
¡
View notes
Text
Pas de Deux Chapter 7
Din Djarin x f!reader | 2.4k | fic masterlist | main masterlist | ao3
chapter summary: How will your next practice go, now that you've talked?
a/n: so what will dancing together be like now? Posting early because I'm traveling later today. See my notes at the end and on the masterlist about reader in this fic and ballet in general. Thank you @katareyoudrilling for being the best beta, as always!!
chapter tags/warnings: gen, ballet terms (see end notes and the masterlist for definitions and videos), fluff!!!, more talking
Chapter 7
By Monday, you were exhausted and most of you hurt, but you walked into morning class with a smile playing around your mouth.
Youâd nailed Hermia, and you didnât think you could feel better about it. Adrian had already tackled you in a hug the day before, after the third performance â thankfully already out of his glittery Puck costume. (Or Elena and Max, the costume heads, would have been pissed.) But heâd been amazing, too, and you told him so.Â
As you put on your shoes for barre, you felt someone come up and stand next to your spot along the wall. You looked up and saw black shoes and black tights, and smiled.
âHi, Din,â you said, looking up to meet his gaze.
His face was as expressionless as always, but you could have sworn the corner of his mouth lifted just slightly when your eyes met. It was small, but it was there.
âMorning,â he greeted you softly. âYou were amazing this weekend.â
You grinned as you moved to stand. He offered his hand and you took it. âYou saw?â You hadnât seen him in the wings or the audience, but that didnât mean anything â it was a packed house for all three performances.
He nodded, squeezing your hand before letting it drop. âYesterday. I brought Grogu, too, he loved it. But we couldnât stay after, so I couldnât look for you to tell you how good you were. You captured her perfectly. I could feel her confusion and turmoil.â He turned to walk towards his spot at the barre and you moved with him. âIt felt so⌠tormented. I could almost see her indecision.â
You smiled and ducked your head as you reached the barre. You grasped it in both hands and leaned into it a little. âUm, thanks.â You looked up at him and found his gaze was soft behind his mask. âIt did feel good. I was really happy with it.â
He nodded at you. âYou should be. It was beautiful.â He paused for a moment, looking at you, and you couldnât think of a single thing to say in response.
Din opened his mouth to say something else, but Alexa called out for everyone to start, and you started to move towards your spot at the barre next to his.Â
âHey,â he said, reaching out to catch your arm. âCan we meet tomorrow? After lunch. To rehearse.â
You nodded. âTomorrow.âÂ
âŚ
On Tuesday, Din told you heâd reserved one of the tiny practice rooms set aside for just that purpose. You promised youâd meet him there. As he stepped away, Adrian stepped up to fill the space. You narrowed your eyes at him.
âWere you just lurking there, listening in?â
âObviously,â he rolled his eyes. âWhatâs the practice room for?â
You laughed. âWeâre going to work on the pas de deux, before rehearsal on Thursday.â
He waggled his eyebrows at you and you elbowed him. âOof. Rude. It sounds like things are going better, then?â
You nodded. âI think so. We havenât tried it again, yet, but I think itâs going to work better, this time.â Youâd already told him all about your conversation with Din, leaving out the personal details Din had shared. You didnât think heâd want you to spread those around.
âGood.â
Alexa called out to Adrian and you moved off, waving as you turned into the hallway.Â
âŚ
As you walked towards the room Din had reserved for you, you couldnât help but notice how different you felt, compared to your walk to rehearsal, so full of dread the week before.Â
You found the small room, tucked away at the end of the rehearsal hall and around the corner. You almost never came back here, you realized.Â
Din was already inside, fiddling with the sound system.
âHey, Din,â you said, smiling when he turned to look at you. You closed the door and moved to join him. âDid you go home for lunch?â
He nodded. âGrogu had a half day today, so I got to eat lunch with him.â He smiled â just a small thing, but the obvious difference from how he was in class warmed you.Â
âThatâs great,â you said, and sat to put on your shoes. âIâm sure he was excited to see you.â
Din made a small noise, and you looked up. He was smiling a bit bigger, and you realized he had laughed, just a bit. You grinned. âHe was. He said he talked about the ballet at school and danced for his teacher.â
You laughed. âThatâs so cute, oh my god.â
Din ducked his head and you thought you saw an even wider smile take over his mouth. You looked down at your shoes to keep yourself from staring. He looked good when he smiled. (He looked good all the time.)
You cut off your own thoughts, moving to stand. âSo, did you have something in mind for today?â You asked.
He nodded. âI was thinking, what if we talk through what we have so far? Iâd like to hear how you think about it. What youâre feeling and how you want to show that. I think that would help me.â
You blinked. âSure. I can do that. And I want to hear from you, what youâre thinking is going on in your characterâs head. Thatâs how I usually start â what is she thinking? And how can I show that, in my body? Should it be obvious or subtle? And then the emotion can come out in so many different ways⌠but I always start from what sheâs thinking.â
Din looked thoughtful. âI usually do think about that, too, but I guess I havenât had as much freedom before. In terms of what I can do with it.â
That made sense, based on what you knew of CBC. But something about what he said caught your attention. âDin⌠what if we use that. In the dance.â
He tilted his head at you and leaned against the barre. âWhat do you mean?â
âWell, we know Kuiil wants our characters to learn from each other and then create something new together, right? Or form a new connection that affects each other.â He nodded. âOk, so what if your character becomes freer or more open over the course of the performance?â
His eyebrows flew upwards. âOh.â He sounded like he was as struck by the idea as you had been a moment before.
You nodded. âYes! And so you could start from something more familiar and change, over the course of the dance. And thatâs what we could work on. So youâre not starting from something so new, but instead growing towards it. Maybe we could even work that in, that my character is sort of drawing yours out? It would add to the back and forth between us, and the give and take. And I could even mirror you a bit, to invite you in! Your reactions could sort of waiver towards and away from the openness my character is inviting you to have. Right? Between acceptance and rejection. What do you think?â You ran out of breath, and you knew your hope for him to agree must have been showing on your face. Now that youâd had the idea, you were attached to it. It seemed perfect.
He looked down, and you bit your lip. âDinââ
But then he looked up, and he looked relieved. He nodded. âI like it. I think thatâs perfect. And it will feel like so much less pressure. I think I was getting too in my head about getting it right from the beginning.â
âOh, good! Ok, great.â You reached out and squeezed his arm. Almost immediately he covered your hand with his free one and pressed down gently. You couldnât help but notice how big his hand was, as it covered yours, and you felt your face heat up and ignored it. You needed to get used to touching each other, anyway. âI think this will be good, Din. We can do this.â
You were standing so close, you realized, since youâd reached out to touch him and heâd held you there. You hesitated. âSo, do you want to start by talking it through?â
He nodded. For a moment he didnât move, but then he squeezed your hand again before releasing it and stepping away. âLetâs start from when we first see each other.â
You nodded and moved to join him in the center of the small room. As you began, you could feel it. This would work.Â
âŚ
Rehearsal on Thursday was so different, you could tell Kuiil was both surprised and over the moon with excitement.
From the moment the music started, you could feel it. You and Din were still dancing separately, still âmeetingâ each other in character, but you were working together. Something had shifted, since you talked and practiced and began to work together. And it might not be what it needed to be yet, but it was so much better than what it was before.
You could feel him moving across the space with you, and it was like a tentative connection formed between you that you could pull taut and release. It was almost like you were listening for each other, taking cues from changes in each otherâs breath or even small movements. His body would echo one part of the music, and yours would follow another in response. You extended your leg, and something in the way he moved his shoulders responded to it. He turned, and you spun around, meeting him from a different angle. It felt good. It was new, but it was there.Â
You ran through it once, and Kuiil looked like he might actually cry, or jump for joy.
âOh, yes, yes!â He said, coming towards you in the middle of the room. He rested his hands on his hips and looked between you, smiling widely. âYes, I knew it â I can see it forming within and between you. Well done, both of you. Could you feel it?â
You and Din both nodded, and he gestured widely with his arms. âOf course you could! The energy, you have found it. You are building it.â He nodded again. âI can see that you have talked, and settled more into your characters. Now we can truly get to work.â
And so you did.
âŚ
February began to fly by, much faster than January, and with much more ease. You and Din found a rhythm together that actually worked. You were friendly, in the mornings in class, though he still hid behind his mask around the rest of the company. And then you started to become something more like actual friends when you were alone or rehearsing with Kuiil.Â
Din seemed more comfortable with you than he had before, and that comfort allowed him to open up in a way you hadnât seen him do yet in his dancing. Kuill began to focus on the second movement, when your characters circled each other, and you could see Din relaxing his form and beginning to open his movements beyond the emotionless technique that had been drilled into him at CBC. It was beautiful to watch â you were so impressed with him.
Two weeks later, rehearsals for Swan Lake had picked up, and so had your rehearsals for the pas de deux.
Kuill had just walked you through the crescendo of the second movement, which involved jumps, some partnered turns, and a complicated lift section. It wasnât the first time Din lifted you in the choreography, but it was the first time you needed to rely on him and his support so completely, with two lifts and transition into a different hold.Â
It wasnât your first time being lifted by a partner, of course, but it was your first time doing something like this with Din. There was always a moment, when partnering with someone new, when you found out just how much you actually trusted each other. You didnât need to be best friends to dance together well, but you did need to trust in the support of your partner.Â
You shook out your arms and legs and rolled your shoulders. You trusted Din. He wasnât hidden behind that expressionless mask anymore, not with you. I can do this.
Kuill started the music, and you twirled into action, leaping past Din. He caught your hand as you began to move away and spun you around him. You âfellâ into a collapsed position over his arm, allowing the spin, and then he guided you upwards with light touches into an arabesque. He tugged you forward through traveling turns that crossed the stage, squeezing your hip just at the right moment to let you know when to stop. Finally you attempted to pull away, and he pulled you back and spun you in a circle into a tour jetĂŠ lift. As you landed he turned you again and lifted you upwards into a horizontal spin that finished with your hands resting on his shoulders as you stretched your legs into a fully extended split, perpendicular to the ground. You paused there, for just a moment, before he lifted you by your hips and then brought you back down gently. You sprang away instantly.
The music stopped, and you turned back to look at Din, breathing hard. You were both grinning. You froze, staring at how it transformed his face. He was beautiful.Â
Kuill called out that that the lift was perfect, but that he wanted you to work on the build up to it. You almost couldnât listen to him. You were too caught up in the feelings running through your body.
Youâd never experienced anything like that before. The first attempt, and it was perfect â Din had lifted you seemingly effortlessly, and his hands had gone exactly where they needed to go. Youâd communicated with each other through touch with ease. You had felt fully supported and able to truly perform to the music, even when in the air. You felt amazing. And you could see on Dinâs face that he felt it, too.
âMy dear?â Kuiil asked, stepping up beside you.Â
You tore your eyes away from Dinâs, finally, and realized youâd probably missed what he said. âSorry! Again?âÂ
Kuiil nodded, and you ignored his knowing smile. He looked almost smug. âAgain,â he agreed, and you stepped back towards Din.
When you looked at him again, you found he hadnât looked away from you. âAgain,â he murmured, echoing Kuiil. The look in his eyes made your breath catch.
It went just as well the second time.Â
âŚ
prev | next
a/n: such improvement!
Partnering: so in this chapter we get an extended partnering sequence. I tried to find moments that looked like what I was picturing for each piece, and theyâre linked above (and they should take you to the right spot in each video) â the hand grab, the traveling turns, communication while partnering, a tour jete lift, and the lift into the split. I hope it makes sense! This video has a bit more about partnered turns (though theyâre doing traveling ones here) and this one has more about what the guy is doing with his hands during those turns. I linked to different spots in this one a couple of times but the video overall is great because Mira Nadon shares some really interesting thoughts about what itâs like to work with a new partner.Â
Iâm going to talk more about Swan Lake next week because itâs more of a focus in the next chapter. đŚ˘
#din djarin x reader#din djarin x you#din djarin x f!reader#din djarin fic#the mandalorian#ballet au#nbt fic#pas de deux fic#x reader#pedro pascal character fanfiction
61 notes
¡
View notes
Note
would you do single dad eddie munson x reader and eddie is a little older than reader and eddieâs look for a baby sitter to look after his baby and reader is the baby sitter and at the end eddie and the reader end up togetherr? thank you đđ
When you saw the ad in the paper, you didn't really think anything of it as you just needed a job, but the second your eyes laid on Eddie, you knew you were done for. He was wearing his signature leather jacket, his hair was just the right amount of messy, and he had those beautiful brown eyes that you swore you could fall into.
"Hey," he greeted with a smile. "Come on in," he opened the door wide for you and you stepped inside, trying your best not to stare at him any longer.
"Nice to see you again," he said and nodded his head towards the living room where his daughter was lying in her portable crib. He picked her up and when you caught a glimpse of her face, you could definitely seen the resemblance between her and Eddie.
"you know Evie," he said, and the way he looked at her, you could tell just how much he loved her.
"Hi, Evie," you gave her a little wave and were so distracted by how much they looked alike even though you had already saw the resemblance when you met them for the first time a couple of weeks ago. Her eyes were just as brown as his were with a little glint in them and her smile mimicked his perfectly. You wondered how much she would look like him when she grew up.
âDo you want to hold her?" He asked, slowly handing her over to you and you hesitantly reach up to take her, noticing that she's reaching for you.
"S-sure," you nod and take her into your arms, noticing how quick she is to rest her head on your shoulder. Eddie stares at the two of you with a smirk and you feel your cheeks heat.
"She really likes you," he says knowingly. "I've cycled through so many sitters since I got custody of her and I don't think I've ever seen her take to any of them like she has to you."
"Really?" You ask, trying your best to look at her out of the corner of your eye.
"Yeah, you guys look real cozy," he nods then leans forward to kiss Evie's head. "Have a good night."
"You too."
With that, Eddie fled the house and you were left alone with Evie. You put her back in the crib so she could sleep then headed into the kitchen where Eddie had left a pizza for you. You happily help yourself, grabbing a plate from where you remembered seeing them when he had given you a tour when he had invited you over the first time. You then went back into the living room and turned on the TV and watched it while you waited for Eddie to get home. All in all, it wasn't a bad night.
You had been watching Evie every single week for a few months and over time, you and Eddie had been getting closer and closer. You could tell he was into you, but weren't sure how to go about it. He was technically your boss and you were scared that things were going to change between the two of you for the worse and you really didn't want to lose Eddie or your job.
You decided one night while he was out that you were going to take the chance and tell him how you felt. If he wasn't into it, you would back off and apologize for reading too much into your relationship and because you just couldn't work for him after being rejected like that, you'd have to quit and you really didn't want to.
Eddie walked through the door and you felt your heart race in your chest as you put Evie into her crib for the night then hurried out into the living room where you got there just in time to see Eddie collapse onto the couch with a sigh.
You took a deep breath and sat next to him, your heart now pounding and you were afraid that he could hear it. He turned to you, the TV glowing on the side of his face that was closest to it. He just looked so...pretty. And it was devastating.
"What are you thinking about?"
He knew you well and now that you were close, it was getting harder to hide things from him. So you supposed it was time to just come out with it.
"I need to tell you something."
"Shoot." He was fully facing you and you were even more nervous.
"I like you," you blurted and his eyes widened, but you weren't sure whether it's because of how loud your voice was or because of your words. But then he grinned and it was the most beautiful thing you'd ever seen.
"I like you too," he replied with a nod, his hair moving as he did so.
"Maybe I should repeat myself," you said. "I like you."
"And I like you too," he replied, using the same tone. "Will this convince you that I understand?" He asked as his hand moved to rest on your knee as he scooted closer so that your thighs were touching.
All you can do is nod and you notice that he's leaning closer to you and you can't help but do the same. His other hand rested on your cheek and his lips touch yours. Slowly at first, but then you were both so into it, trying to get as close to each other as you possibly could with the way you were sitting.
And just as soon as his tongue swiped across your bottom lip, Evie begins to cry and Eddie was quick to tend to her but not before pressing his lips to yours again before hurrying down the hall to take care of his daughter.
As you waited for him to get back, you sat there, chewing on your bottom lip, noticing that it tasted whatever lip balm Eddie had been wearing. And when he comes back into the living room with the baby sleeping with her hear head on his shoulder and sits next to you, you decide there's no other place you'd rather be than there.
#stranger things#eddie munson#eddie munson x reader#eddie x y/n#eddie munson x you#eddie munson x fem!reader#eddie munson smut
54 notes
¡
View notes
Text
đđđ đžđ đšđśđžđ đžđ đżđđđ đśđđš đ˛đśđ
đŚđśđđđđđž đľđśđđđđ đ đ
đđśđšđđ
đđđ đśđđš đđśđđđđđž đ˝đśđđ đđđđđ đđśđ¸đ˝đđđ˝đđ đđžđđ¸đ đđžđšđšđđ đđ¸đ˝đđđ, đśđđš đ˝đśđđ đśđđđśđđ đˇđđđ đđđđđđžđđđđđ đśđ đđśđ¸đ˝ đđđ˝đđđâ đđ˝đđđśđđ đśđ đđśđđđđśđđđ đđśđđđđđđš đđđđšđđđđ. đđ˝đžđđđ đđśđđ đś đťđđđđđđśđđžđđ đđđđ đđ˝đđ đđđ đˇđđđ˝ đđđš đđ
đśđ đđś, đśđ đ˝đđđđđđđ đˇđđđžđ đđ đđđ đ˝đžđđ˝.
đś/đ: đžđâđ đđ đťđžđđđ đđžđđ đžđ đś đťđđ đđđśđđ đđđžđđžđđ đđđđđđ˝đžđđ đđđđđđ đđśđđ, đđđâđđ đ˝đśđđ đđ đˇđđśđ đđžđđ˝ đđ đ
đśđ¸đžđđ đđđđ
*.¡:¡.⧠⌠â§.¡:¡.* *.¡:¡.⧠⌠â§.¡:¡.* *.¡:¡.⧠⌠â§.¡:¡.*
part 1 ⢠part 2
âHey Kacchan!â You called out, bursting into a light jog towards the only familiar face you had seen that morning. You smirked as you watched him tense up at hearing that godforsaken nickname that you just loved to tease him with, causing him to spin around rapidly, although not to greet you.
You were feeling good in your new uniform- it was as comfortable as any school uniform could be, and fit almost perfectly. The man in front of you, however, looked like his trousers were a size too big as they pooled at his ankles. You were sure Mitsuki probably had to wrestle his tie onto him for a âfirst dayâ photo before he left the house that morning, that surprisingly was still neatly tucked into the collar of his shirt.
âI canât believe youâre wearing a tie, are you even the real Katsuki?â You teased, eyeing up and down in feigned suspicion whilst his scowl only grew stronger.
âShut up, youâre so obsessed with me.â He scoffed, not willing to yell at you before he even walked into his dream school, âCanât believe I have to deal with your annoying ass for another three years.â
âAnd the rest of our decades as pros after that! You know we make a great team- we could even put our agencies next to eachother.â You smirked, knowing exactly how to piss him off.
âWhy do you always have to be such a pain in the ass?â Katsuki shouted half-heartedly before continuing to walk towards your new homeroom. He didnât refuse your suggestion- you smirked.
You refrained from teasing your longtime âbest friendâ on your way through the building, using the time to look around the halls of the prestigious U.A. High and really soak it all in. You were really here, on your journey to being a hero. Looking out through the long glass windows you ovserved the masses of students still making their way across the grounds, as tiny as ants from this distance.
Katsuki glanced over his shoulder, watching you for a moment as you stared out of the window peacefully. He hated to admit it, even to himself, but you might not be so bad when you werenât deliberately trying to push his buttons. He turned away and opened the classroom door, quickly shoving his tie into his bag and kicking his feet up on the desk.
One difference between you and Katsuki was that you were willing to make friends with other people; that was something heâd never understand about you. Once you entered the room, you were practically swept up by a girl who was completely pink, with a wide smile and eager eyes.
âHey! I saw you earlier on the way in and you are so so cute!â She said, squeezing your hands in hers enthusiastically, âMy nameâs Mina, wanna be friends?!â
She bounced up and down slightly, watching you as you nodded and told her your name in return before calling another girl- Tsu- over to meet you. As you waited for your teacher to arrive, you chatted with the girls about how amazing it was that you had gotten into U.A. Conversations throughout the room quickly ceased as the voice on your homeroom teacher filled the air, introducing himself with nothing but exhaustion before telling everybody to put on a gym uniform and head outside.
âAre you friends with that shouty guy?â Mina asked on your way down the stairs.
âOh, Katsuki? Yeah, I guess you could say that.â You started, âWe were in middle school together but its more like a rivalry than a friendship- I donât think he actually likes me that much.â
âOoohhh drama~!â She smirked in a sing-song voice, excitedly jogging ahead of you, âSee you out on the field, âkay?â
Once you had changed into your gym clothes, you walked out into the slightly chilly spring air, the sunâs faint warmth overpowered by the cool breeze glazing over your exposed forearms.
âA quirk assessment this early?â Tsu whispered from beside you, âI hope he isnât serious about expelling anybody.â
âHe doesnât seem like the kind of guy to make jokesâŚâ You responded, watching as Aizawa instructed Katsuki to throw the ball as far as possible using his quirk.
You werenât surprised when you heard how far it went, after all, you already knew how powerful he was. In your way to the first assessment, you managed to catch up to Katsuki, hands in pockets as he walked over.
âGreat job with the ball toss, bigshot.â You smirked, poking his cheek as his pursed lips quickly turned back into his signature scowl.
âShut up! Iâm gonna destroy you in every damn one of these tests!â He yelled, sparking up his palms towards you, but you only swatted them away and giggled, making his anger worse.
Despite his harsh words towards you, he never actually called you anything too demeaning, unlike with other people.
âMaybe in your dreams, Kacchan.â
Rivalry and teasing aside, you and Katsuki had some kind of close bond; the kind where you knew you could trust each other if it came to it in a life or death situation.
Little did you know just how soon that bond would be tested.
*.¡:¡.⧠⌠â§.¡:¡.* *.¡:¡.⧠⌠â§.¡:¡.* *.¡:¡.⧠⌠â§.¡:¡.*
#bnha#mha x reader#my hero academia#katsuki bakugo x reader#bakugou katsuki#katsuki bakugou#bakugou x reader
42 notes
¡
View notes
Text
Chapter One of Made Your Mark
Pairing: sugardaddy!rockstar!Eddie Munson X fem!reader
Summary: You and Eddie meet on the sugar daddy site recommended to you by Steve.
Word Count: 2.3K
Fic Masterlist
As of today, it had been six months since you graduated from your university. Six months since your graduation where you were spoken to about new opportunities and where life can take you. Six months of companies not moving forward with you for the job you applied for, for the job you spent four years of your life getting your degree for. Youâd spent four years trying to become an author and still no one wanted to hire you. Six months of working at some fancy restaurant near your apartment that barely paid you enough to get by in life.
To say you were frustrated and wanting to give up was an understatement, you were furious. But you promised yourself that you would keep trying and trying until you got the job you worked so hard for. Which you hoped would happen soon seeing as you were getting pretty tired of the rich people who talked down to you at the restaurant where you worked as a waitress.Â
You were underpaid and just tired of it all, working there and trying to get the job you wanted was more exhausting than the four years of work you put in to actually get your degree. But you were still determined nevertheless.
Youâd expected a restaurant like this in such a busy area of your city to be well paying, but it turns out a little above minimum wage and very small tips is what you get working there. So, on the side you wrote articles for small magazines during your free time, which turned out to be somewhat successful. But the most youâd ever earned on one of your articles was $400, which would have to do for now until you got the job you actually wanted, not needed.Â
At the current moment, the time was 10:30pm on a Saturday and you had gotten home not long ago from another busy shift at the restaurant. You were tired and your body was sore, as if you had just gone on a four hour long hike. Your hair becoming a little messy as you got settled on your couch, the belt that was once in the loops on your black dress pants now resting on the floor next to your coffee table and the first few buttons of your shirt undone. You were just about to fall asleep here, your eyelids growing more and more heavy with each passing moment, when someone knocked on your door, causing you to perk up right away.Â
Not feeling the need to ask who it was on your doorstep at this hour, you simply got up then unlocked and opened the front door to your apartment. Revealing your best friend, Steve to be standing there on the other side of the door.
He softly greeted you with a hug, making you smile into his chest. âHey, howâve you been?â he gently asked as he rubbed your back. âHi, Stevie.â you quietly said while you hugged him back, making a smile of his own appear on his face. âIâve been alright, just tired and frustrated. The usual.â you answer with a shrug, quickly closing the door behind him after you leave his arms. Your answer made him frown as the two of you walked over to your couch.
You and Steve had known each other since middle school and had been very close since then. You had truly been through it all together. He hated to see that his best friend was struggling even after all you had done to get what you wanted.Â
That frown is still on Steveâs face as he started to speak again, âI understand. But I have to admit, Iâm tired of seeing you like this, yâknow, struggling. You donât deserve to.â he said from his spot next to you on your couch. You let a sigh escape your lips, your shoulders dropping into a more relaxed position, âI know,â you said, pausing to take a deep breath, âbut thereâs not much I can do except keep sending out my manuscript to more publishers. Although I will admit I donât have much hope, itâs just been six months of rejections from every publisher Iâve send it to. I hate that itâs this hard to be successful at the job I literally got my degree for but I guess all I can do is keep trying and working.â you told him, fully conveying your frustration and exhaustion to Steve again.
He nodded in response and gently placed his hand over yours, âI get it and I agree, you should keep trying. But until you do get an acceptance from a publisher, I do have a suggestion that could get you out of working that tiring waitress gig I know you hate.â he replied, making you chuckle a little while a smirk appeared on his lips.Â
You jokingly rolled your eyes at him and began to rest your head on the couch, âOh no, what is it this time?â you jokingly said, waiting to hear what Steve had to say, no longer surprised by his antics. He nodded in response then spoke once more, âNow this is just a suggestion, so just hear me out okay?â he said, earning a nod from you in response before he speaks again, âI think that you should check out this sugar daddy site Iâve used a few times called Classy. Thereâs a lot of rich lonely guys on there who will literally pay you just to hang out with them. Itâs not as bad as youâd think it would be.â he explained, moving his hands around while he talked.
You had to admit, itâs a decent and possible solution to your problem. But you still felt a bit suspicious about it anyway.Â
You opened your mouth to speak but Steve quickly interrupted before you could even get a word out, âI know what youâre going to say but, please, just think about it.â he said, making you roll your eyes again. âSteve, I appreciate the advice I do. But you know I want to be independent, I donât know how to feel about the idea of relying on someone else for money. But I promise to think about it and thatâs all youâre getting out of me, Stevie.â you replied, ending your statement with a laugh while you point at Steve. He laughs with you, âFine, but I still think you should do it.â he said, his hands up in the air in surrender, causing the two of you to laugh a little.
As for the rest of the night, you and Steve sat on your couch and talked a bit more about all of the things that have been going on in your lives since you last spoke to each other.
You told him about how stressful work has been and the recent articles youâve written. How your dating life has been non-existent with how busy youâve been. Steve told you about how stressful his own job has been. As well as how nicely past arrangements with sugar daddies have gone for him and to be picky when picking one.Â
A few hours later at about 2am, after talking for a while you and Steve said your goodbyes and he headed home, promising to tell you that he made it home safe when he got there.Â
Once he had left, you began to get ready for bed while you thought about Steveâs suggestion. If youâre being honest with yourself, this whole sugar daddy thing did sound a bit appealing.
But it is something you wanted to think about and talk to Steve about more before you made a decision. You just wanted to make sure that the site is safe and that you wouldnât be putting yourself into a dangerous situation. You also wanted to really think about whether or not you are really okay with having someone, a rich man specifically, help you out financially. You almost fell asleep that night thinking about it too, but you decided to let your mind rest for now. Youâd call Steve in the morningâthe beginning of your day offâ and talk about it more then.Â
âTime Skip: Two Days Laterâ
Two days have passed now since Steve had brought up the idea of getting a sugar daddy to you and after a lot of talking and thinking about it, you decided to give the site a chance. But if it ended up going badly for you, youâd never use it again. And as a safety precaution, you promised to send Steve the name, phone number and photo of the guy you end up deciding to meet up with.
Your profile on the site consisted of the basic things about you one might want to know, a few of your interests and a few photos of you to go along with it. Afterward, you began to scroll through the site and the profiles of the sugar daddies on there.
Meanwhile, as you were deciding whether to go through with signing up for this site or not, Eddie was sitting on his own couch in his own home.Â
At this point in his life, Eddie was one month into his band, Corroded Coffinâs one year long break from making music and touring. When the band was active, he had been completely fine with living alone, he was too busy to even have the chance to feel lonely. But now that he had absolutely nothing to do but work on his solo music, that lonely feeling had easily creeped into his life. Now his home felt empty and cold instead of comforting and warm like it usually did when he was busy. Because of touring and making music, he used to rarely be here and now heâs here all the time.
He wanted someone to spend his newfound free time with, he wanted companionship. But itâs a bit difficult for him to find love on dating apps, all of his accounts end up getting taken down not long after he makes them because people think theyâre someone pretending to be him. He canât meet anyone by just going out anymore without getting swarmed by paparazzi and fans because of his fame. So, he decided to check out a sugar daddy site called âClassyâ that heâs seen ads for a few times. âMaybe it could be promising?" he thought.
Nevertheless, he decided to give it a shot and created an account on the site. Like you, on his profile he included some basic information about himself, some of his interests and a few photos of himself. His bio, which he quickly typed out without really thinking about it, simply said, â37, Just looking for someone to spend time with.â Then like you he began to scroll through the site and the profiles of the sugar babies on there.Â
Ten minutes into your own scrolling, you stopped on Eddieâs profileâhis beauty having caught your eyeâand you clicked on it right away. After looking through his profile a bit, it seems like he would be a good match for you. Heâs definitely not as demanding as the other men on there. So you messaged him. You knew who he was of course and while you are shocked to see him on the site, you didn't bring either of those things up in your message, assuming that he probably just wants to be treated like any other person.
The message you ended up sending to him after deleting and retyping it a few times said, âHey, if youâre up for it, Iâd be open to discussing an arrangement that would work best for us. :)â You then, with your heart still beating a little fast, hit send and closed the website on your phone for now.Â
âââââââââ
After a bit of scrolling, Eddie really hadnât found anyone who matched what he was looking for. But he didnât want to give up on this yet, so he headed over to the inbox part of the site and saw that nearly a hundred messages had already appeared even though his account had only existed for less than an hour. Most of these people didnât really interest him, mostly because they seemed to only be interested in him because of his fame, not because they want the same thing as him.
Seeing this made him want to give up for now and heâs about to close the site, mentally planning on looking at it again later when he sees your name in his inbox and the preview of what you had sent to him. But before he had properly looked at the message you sent, he was immediately drawn to look at your profile first. Your profile picture alone had him entranced, you were just so beautiful and the bits of your personality that you included on your profile only made him more entranced with you. If that was even possible.Â
He then read your message, the message making him smile to know that this woman he was so drawn to was interested in the same sort of arrangement as him. He messaged you back as soon as he finished reading your message, his fingers gliding across the keyboard on his phone, âHi. Sounds like a plan! Meet me at The Rouge for dinner on Friday at 6pm so we can properly talk about how we both want this to work. See you then. ;)â Not long after he had sent this, you checked the site and saw this message waiting for you in your inbox, your cheeks blushing at the thought of a man as handsome as him being interested in you.Â
You agreed to meeting up with him for dinner right away and he responded again quite quickly like you had, this time with his number so that the two of you wouldnât have to keep in touch through the site. You then sent him a quick message saying hi and letting him know that it was you texting him, getting a response from him moments later that simply said, âHi :)â back, causing you to smile softly to yourself.
#eddie munson#eddie munson x reader#eddie munson x fem!reader#eddie munson x you#eddie munson x y/n#eddie munson stranger things#eddie munson imagine#eddie munson fluff#eddie munson fanfic#eddie munson fic#eddie munson fanfiction#edward munson#stranger things#joe quinn#joseph quinn#eddie munson au#stranger things fic#stranger things fanfic#stranger things fanfiction#stranger things x reader#stranger things imagine#corroded coffin#fanfiction#multi chap fic
23 notes
¡
View notes
Text
HOW MAKNAE LINE FOUND OUT
Enhypen 8thmember!oc
synopsis : How the maknae line found out and reacted to Roza and Hyung line dating.
wc : 1.8k
â§ď˝Ľďž: â§ď˝Ľďž: â§ď˝Ľďž: â§ď˝Ľďž: â§ď˝Ľďž: â§ď˝Ľďž: â§ď˝Ľďž: â§ď˝Ľďž: â§ď˝Ľďž: â§ď˝Ľďž: â§ď˝Ľďž: *â§
Jungwon : The members agreed if anyone in the maknae line was gonna find out first it should be Jungwon. Heâs the leader and it makes sense he should know for the dynamic of the team. It had been a month since they started dating and thought now would be a good time to tell Jungwon. The five of them were gathered in Rozaâs room when they messaged Jungwon telling him to come see them.
âHey, what's up?â Jungwon said, clearly confused as he was greeted by the five members waiting for him. âUmm, we wanted to talk to you about somethingâŚâ Roza said quietly. Jungwon felt a little scared, was he in trouble or were they angry at him. He didn't know. âIs something wrong?â âno.. it's about something important. Sit downâ Jungwon sat down next to Roza as Heeseung got ready to speak. âSo I'm sure you have been well aware that some of us have had romantic feelings for Roza, Right?â Heeseung started. âMaybeâŚâ Jungwon replied. âWell those feelings have turned into a relationship,â Heeseung continued. âWith who?â Jungwon blurted, quickly looking at Roza to find out which member she was dating.
âThat's the thing, it's not just one member.â âWait, now I'm confused? More than one of you is dating Roza?â âall four of us areâŚâ Jake said getting right to the point. âWhatâŚâ âI know it's a lot to process but it's true and we wanted to let you know first because you're the leader.â Roza said as Jungwonâs mind went into overdrive. âAll of you⌠at the same time?â âyesâ they all said at once. âWell that's different, but i guess if it works why not?â
The air in the room was still thick as the members sat in silence. âWas that it?â âyea, that was itâŚâ Roza whispered. âThat wasn't as bad as I was expecting. It was kinda obvious you guys like Roza, but this wasn't the outcome I was expecting.â âWas it really that obvious?â Jay said. âI mean kinda, Niki was already suspicious.â âReally, He was?â Heeseung said as he was nervous. âWhat did he say?â âHe said he caught you guys talking about it a couple of weeks ago?â âhe was properly spying on usâ âYes i wasâ the members turn to see Niki at the door. âWhat are you doing? We're having a private conversation.â âWell you left the door wide open, that's not my fault.â He smirked.
Niki : âWhat's up?â. âI have a question and I want you to be honest with meâ. âYea dude, of course what up?â Jay said, getting a little concerned. Heeseung took a deep breath as he calmed his nerves before speaking. âHow would you feel about us dating Roza⌠like at the same time?â. âYou mean like us four all dating Roza togetherâŚâ Jay said, clarifying what he heard. âYeah, I don't know. Heeseung and I brought it up last night and it truly doesn't sound like a bad idea knowing how we all feel about her. This might be the best solutionâ. Heeseung nodded his head in agreement with Jake.
Niki stood outside the door as the older members talked amongst themself. Niki wasn't surprised at all. He had a hunch that at least two of them liked Roza but all of them. That was a little surprising. As Niki continued to listen through the door he heard them finishing up their talk and quickly went back to his room. Later that week he made his way to Jungwon's room to talk to him about what he found out.
âHyung, can I talk to you?â âyeah what's up?â Niki braced himself as he knew what he was gonna say would sound a little weird. âI'm pretty sure the hyungâs like RozaâŚâ âreally, you think?â âwell i don't think i knowâŚâ âwait what! How?â âI overheard them talking about it the other day.â Jungwon sat there confused. âAll of them?â âYeah, I think so?â âThat's interesting,â Jungwon said, eyebrows furrowed together. âWell I guess we'll just have to see what happens with that thenâŚâ âWhat's the probability that they all date herâ Niki said, a smirk on his face. âI'm gonna say pretty low⌠doesn't seem likely to me. Now leave my room.â Niki got up leaving Jungwon alone.
âThat's the thing, it's not just one member.â âWait, now I'm confused? More than one of you is dating Roza?â âall four of us areâŚâ Jake said getting right to the point. âWhatâŚâ âI know it's a lot to process but it's true and we wanted to let you know first because you're the leader.â Roza said as Jungwonâs mind went into overdrive. âAll of you⌠at the same time?â âyesâ they all said at once. âWell that's different, but i guess if it works why not?â
Niki had just finished gaming when he overheard the members talking. âWhat are they doing?â walking towards the sound, he was surprised to find the members all talking with the door wide open. He stood there and continued to listen as they talked.
âI mean kinda, Niki was already suspicious.â âReally, He was?â Heeseung said as he was nervous. âWhat did he say?â âHe said he caught you guys talking about it a couple of weeks ago?â âhe was properly spying on usâ
âYes i wasâ the members turn to see Niki at the door. âWhat are you doing? We're having a private conversation.â âWell you left the door wide open, that's not my fault.â He smirked. He watched as the Hyung line began to argue about who left it open. âIt was probably Jake,â Jay pointed. âIt wasn't me! It was probably Sunghoon!â Jake yelled back. Niki looked at Roza who called him over to join her and Jungwon on her bed. âSo you already knew?â Roza questioned. âNot fully, but I had a hunch that was what was happening. You guys also were not subtle at all⌠just saying.â He laughed.
âOh well, at least you know⌠only Sooyoung and Sunoo left.â She whispered. The four older boys were still squabbling when Roza told them to leave. âWait, why?â Heeseung said as all four look equally confused. âI want time with my maknaeâs. Now go.â "that's not fairâŚâ Jake pouted. âToo bad!â Niki laughed. âNoona likes us moreâŚâ Jungwon smirked as the four hesitated to leave but eventually did. Roza, Jungwon and Niki continued to laugh as they heard them talking outside. âCan't believe our own girlfriend just kicked us out of her room.â âYou like us more right?â Niki questioned. âOh yeah.â Roza said, the trio giggling amongst themselves.
Sooyoung : Roza and Sooyoung being the only girls in Enhypen meant they were super close, often telling each other any and every secret. That also meant they knew when the other was keeping something from them. Both girls had been sitting in silence, just enjoying each other's company. Sooyoung could tell something was off, Roza kept glancing at her.
âYou wanna tell me something?â Sooyoung questioned. Roza, caught off guard, just stared at her. âWhat noâŚâ âyou do i can see it on your face.â Roza hesitated before deciding to talk. âYou know how i told you about how i maybe liked HeeseungâŚâ âhow you love him?â Sooyoung teased. âshut upâŚâ Roza laughed shyly before carrying on. âWell I like someone else.â âWait, who? What about Heeseung!â âjust let me explainâŚâ Sooyoung's eyes watching as Roza fought off her nerves. âI like Sunghoon too⌠and Jake and Jay as well maybeâŚâ Now it was Roza's turn to watch as Sooyoung's brain worked overtime trying to register what she just said.
âYou like all four of them?â âyeah, basicallyâŚâ âWell that wasn't what i expected. I was expecting something more shocking.â She laughed. âI'm dating all four of them..â Roza blurted, Sooyoung looked shocked. âWhat?â âI'm dating all four of themâŚâ âat the same time?â Roza nodded her head. Silence took over the room. Roza felt nervous, Sooyoungâs face shocked and still. âYou're not mad are you. I promise I was gonna tell you sooner, I just forgot. And I wasn't planning for this to happen, it just happened, I swear-â Sooyoung grabbed Rozaâs hands stopping her rambling.
âHold on, I'm not mad. I'm just surprised okayâŚâ The reassuring smile on Sooyoungâs face immediately calmed Roza down. âOkay, I just got scared. I didn't know how you were gonna feel.â âI get it. But it makes sense now, that was the big news I was expecting from you.â âYou always read me like a book, don't you?â âI have my hunches.â both girls lying down on Sooyoung's bed giggling. âSo how long have you guys been dating?â âI would say close to a month I think?â Roza could see Sooyoungâs smirking creeping onto her face.
âWhat?â âhave you kissed any of them yet?â Roza rolled her eyes, a blush spreading across her face. âMaybeâŚâ âIt was Heeseung wasn't it?â âhow did you know?â Roza questioned. âlet's just say Niki caught you two in the dressing room a couple of days ago..â Sooyoung laughed as Roza sat up shocked. âNiki can't keep his mouth shut can he!â She half shouted. âNo, I don't think he can.â Sooyoung watched as Roza got up quickly leaving her room. âWhere are you going?â âI need to tell Sunoo before Niki does.â
Sunoo : Sunoo was coming out of the bathroom after doing a face-mask when Roza came running towards him and pushed him back inside the bathroom. âWoah, what's happening?â He questioned as Roza locked that door. âI need to tell you something.â âYeah, what is it?â âI'm dating Heeseung-â âwhat!â Sunoo shouted, cutting Roza off before she could finish. âWait! I have more to say.â âYou just told me you're dating Heeseung. What's more shocking than that?â Roza took a deep breath. âI'm dating Heeseung and Sunghoon-â âwhat-â She put her hand on Sunooâs mouth.
âI'm dating, Heeseung and Sunghoon and Jay⌠and JakeâŚâ Sunooâs jaw dropped and he just stood in silence. âNo way!â âyes.. Way?â a smile now on Sunooâs face. âYou're being serious?â âyes..â âNiki was right!â Roza's face froze. âNiki told you?â âyeah⌠at first i thought he was lying!â âI'm gonna kill him!â Sunoo grabbed Rozaâs hands trying to hold her back as she opened the bathroom door.
âWhat are you doing?â Both Roza and Sunoo turned to see Heeseung staring at them. âWhat were you doing in the bathroom together?â âShe just told me about your guys little arrangementâ Sunoo giggled as Heeseung blushed, realizing what he was talking about. âOh, yeah.. That.â âNiki told everyone before we could!â Roza said. âHe did?â âYes, he even told Sooyoung before I could.â She pouted. âI'll go talk to him.â Heeseung sighed, going to find the maknae.
â§ď˝Ľďž: â§ď˝Ľďž: â§ď˝Ľďž: â§ď˝Ľďž: â§ď˝Ľďž: â§ď˝Ľďž: â§ď˝Ľďž: â§ď˝Ľďž: â§ď˝Ľďž: â§ď˝Ľďž: â§ď˝Ľďž: *â§
a/n : Niki is the maknae đ which means he is the Youngest! (iykyk)
#kpop#added member#enhypen 8th member#enhypen added member#enhypen eighth member#enhypen female member#enhypen female addition#kpop oc#enhypen female oc#enhypen scenarios#enhypen ff#enhypen reactions#enhypen x oc#female!enhypenmember#8th member of enhypen#enhypen oc#enhypen recs#enhypen imagines
20 notes
¡
View notes
Text
âSaturnâ - inspired by songs.
pairings: Beomgyu x gn!reader
genre: angst, comfort.
warnings: reader is not in a good place mentally / struggles with mental health. Pet names (baby).
wc: 557 words || check out my masterlist.
Now playing: Saturn - sza | seasons - w2e |
The rain tapped gently against the window, a soothing rhythm that contrasted sharply with the chaos in your mind. You sat on the couch, staring blankly at the television, the images and sounds blending into an indistinguishable blur. Lately, you felt detached, as if you were merely a spectator in your own life, unable to connect with your feelings or thoughts, like youâre floating away.
But youâve been here many times before, and even if you keep trying to break the pattern, you canât help but wonder: why do bad things happen to good people? You keep trying your bestâwhereâs your reward? Sometimes it feels like everyone and everything is against you, with no one to save you but yourself.
As if on cue, the front door creaked open, snapping you out of your train of thought. An oblivious Beomgyu stepped inside, shaking off the rain from his umbrella. He paused when he saw you, his expression softening with concern. "Hey," he greeted, his voice warm and gentle. "Is everything alright?"
You forced a smile, but it didn't quite reach your eyes. "I'm fine," you lied, even though you knew it wouldn't fool him.
Beomgyu set his umbrella aside and walked over to you, sitting down beside you on the couch with a huff. He studied your face for a moment, his eyes filled with empathy. "You don't have to pretend with me," he said softly. "I can hear your thoughts from here," he added with a small chuckle, trying to lighten the mood.
A sigh escaped your lips, and you looked away, feeling a wave of discontent wash over you. "I just... Iâm thinking too much again," you admitted, your voice barely above a whisper. "I can't seem to find any meaning in anything. It's like I'm floating through life without really living it."
Beomgyu reached out, taking your hand in his. His touch was warm and reassuring, a lifeline in the sea of your confusion. "It's okay to feel this way," he said, his voice soothing. "We all go through moments like this. But you don't have to face it alone."
There he was, your only anchor in moments like this. Beomgyu was the light at the end of the tunnel, the only one who could actually make you calm down when the weight of existing became too much. Sometimes, you even liked to fantasize about moving off the planet with himâheâs the only thing worth saving.
You felt a lump form in your throat, the gentleness in his voice breaking your walls. "I don't know what to do," you confessed, your eyes filling with tears. "I feel so lost."
Beomgyu pulled you into a gentle embrace, his arms wrapping around you protectively. "We'll figure it out together," he murmured, his breath warm against your ear. "You don't have to have all the answers right now. Just take it one step at a time."
You leaned into his embrace, the comfort of his presence easing the tightness in your chest. "Thank you, I don't know what I'd do without you."
"You don't have to thank me, baby," Beomgyu replied, his voice filled with love. "I'm here for you, always," he murmured against your hair, pressing a kiss to the top of your head.
The two of you sat in silence for a while, the rain continuing its gentle symphony outside. Beomgyu's arms around you, the steady rise and fall of his chest provided a sense of stability that you desperately needed. Gradually, the storm in your mind began to calm, replaced by a sense of peace that you hadn't felt in a long time.
As the night drew to a close, you found yourself feeling lighter, the weight of your worries lifted by Beomgyu's unwavering support. You knew there would still be difficult days ahead, but with Beomgyu by your side, you felt ready to face them.
#yezzns â#beomgyu fluff#beomgyu#choi beomgyu#txt fluff#txt comfort#txt soft thoughts#txt soft hours#beomgyu soft hours#beomgyu soft thoughts#Beomgyu comfort#kpop writers#kpop fluff#kpop au#kpop drabbles#kpop angst#kpop aesthetic#kpop fanfic#txt#txt oneshots#txt post#yeonjun thoughts#soobin fluff#taehyun fluff#hueningkai fluff#txt moa
24 notes
¡
View notes
Text
đđđ° đđ¨đŤđ
Parings â Dad! Peter Parker x Mom! Reader
Warnings â fluff, swear words
Summary â Baby Parker learns a new word.
The sound of something hard being stepped on echoed through the living room, followed by Peterâs exasperated voice. âShit!â He hissed in pain, immediately hopping on one foot while holding the other, glaring down at the brightly colored toy car he'd just crushed under his weight.
You looked up from where you were sitting on the couch, stifling a laugh as you took in the sight of your husband cursing under his breath while clutching his throbbing foot. "Are you okay, Pete?"
Peter rubbed the back of his head sheepishly. "Yeah, just... stepped on one of Ben's toys. It hurts likeâ"
Before Peter could finish, the small voice of your three-year-old son, Ben, piped up from across the room, sitting on the floor surrounded by more toys. âShit!â
Both of you froze. Ben, giggling, clearly enjoying the new word he'd just learned, repeated it, louder this time. "Shit! Shit!"
Your hands flew to your mouth, barely containing your laughter. Peter, wide-eyed and mortified, immediately crouched down in front of Ben. "No, no, buddy. We donât say that word, okay? Thatâs... that's a bad word."
But Ben only grinned up at Peter, eyes twinkling with mischief, before chanting again, âShit!â
You finally let out a laugh, unable to hold it in anymore. Peter shot you a look of despair, his face already red with embarrassment. "This is not funny! He's going to be saying that all day now!"
"Oh, come on, itâs a little funny," you teased, getting up from the couch and ruffling Peterâs hair as you walked by. "Besides, itâs your fault for saying it in front of him."
Peter groaned, plopping down onto the floor next to Ben, who was still giggling and playing with his toys. "Iâm such an idiot. Now our three-year-old knows how to swear." He slumped against the wall, rubbing his face. âAunt May is going to be here soon, and God forbid he says that in front of her.â
You smiled, watching the two of them, Peter looking utterly defeated while Ben was thoroughly entertained. "Donât worry," you reassured him. "Weâll just have to make sure Ben doesnât say it again tonight."
Peter raised an eyebrow. "And how exactly do you propose we do that?"
You shrugged, grinning. "We'll just have to pray."
Peter sighed dramatically, throwing his hands in the air. "Great. Prayer. Thatâll totally work with a three-year-old."
Ben, oblivious to the chaos he'd caused, grabbed one of his toy cars and drove it across the floor, making little engine sounds. You sat down next to Peter, leaning your head on his shoulder. "Itâll be fine," you said, though the amusement in your voice betrayed you. "May wonât even notice."
Peter gave you a skeptical look. "Youâre way too calm about this."
You just smiled, deciding to let him sweat it out a bit longer. After all, it was Peterâs fault for swearing in the first place. And besides, Ben repeating the word was kind of hilarious, in a mischievous, toddler way.
The doorbell rang later that evening, signaling Mayâs arrival. Peter jumped up, giving you one last pleading look. âPlease, please make sure he doesnât say it.â
You smirked, raising your hands in mock surrender. âIâll do my best.â
Peter opened the door, greeting May with a hug. âHey, May! Come on in.â
May smiled warmly, stepping into the living room, her arms loaded with shopping bags. âHello, my favorite people!â She said, beaming when she saw Ben. âAnd howâs my little man today?â
Benâs eyes lit up at the sight of his grandma, and he bolted toward her, excited. âGramma May!â He squealed.
Peter shot you a quick, nervous glance as May bent down to greet Ben. âHi, sweetheart,â she cooed, reaching into one of her bags. âI brought you a new car!â
Benâs eyes grew wide with excitement, and you saw Peter visibly relax. For a moment, it seemed like everything was fine. But then it happened.
Ben, his face full of glee, clutched the new toy car May handed him and shouted at the top of his lungs, âShit!â
The room fell into stunned silence. Peterâs face drained of all color, while you slapped a hand over your mouth, trying â and failing â to hold back laughter. May blinked, clearly caught off guard. âWhat... did he just say?â
Ben, grinning up at his great-aunt, held up his new toy car proudly. âShit!â
Peter scrambled to explain, his voice high-pitched and panicked. âNo, no, itâs not what it sounds like! I-I stepped on one of his toys earlier, and I accidentally swore, and now heâsâheâs just repeating it, but it wasn't on purpose, I swear!â
May raised an eyebrow, crossing her arms over her chest. "Peter Benjamin Parker, you taught your child to swear?"
âI didnât mean to!â Peter blurted out, running a hand through his hair. âIt just slipped out, and now he thinks itâs funny!â
You couldnât hold back anymore and burst out laughing, the whole situation just too absurd. âHeâs been saying it all day,â you wheezed, wiping a tear from the corner of your eye. âItâs kind of hilarious.â
May looked between the two of you, shaking her head, though there was a hint of amusement in her eyes. âPeter, you really need to watch your mouth around your son. Heâs at that age where heâll repeat anything.â
âI know, I know,â Peter groaned, facepalming. âBut how was I supposed to know heâd pick that up so fast?â
Ben, completely unaware of the chaos heâd caused, started playing with his new toy car, still occasionally muttering âshitâ under his breath as he zoomed it across the floor.
May shot Peter a stern look, though you could see she was holding back a smile. âWell, youâd better figure out how to stop him from saying it before he starts doing it at school.â
Peter let out a long, defeated sigh. âYeah, Iâll work on that.â
As the evening wore on, Benâs new favorite word thankfully began to lose its charm, though every now and then heâd whisper it just to get a reaction out of Peter. But by the end of the night, Peter had accepted his fate.
As May said her goodbyes, she patted Peter on the back. âGood luck, sweetie. Youâre going to need it.â
Peter just groaned, rubbing his temples. "Thanks, Aunt May."
After she left, you turned to Peter, still grinning. âWell, that couldâve gone worse.â
Peter gave you a halfhearted glare. âYouâre never going to let me live this down, are you?â
âNot a chance,â you replied, chuckling.
ââ ࣪ Ëŕźş đŠâđŞ ŕźťË ŕŁŞ â
#peter parker spiderman#peter parker fanfiction#peter parker#peter parker imagine#peter parker x you#thollandsgirl2013#tomholland2013#tom holland#tom holland spiderman#spider man#tom holland fanfiction#peter parker x reader#peter parker x fem!reader
28 notes
¡
View notes
Text
Jinny Hex tried to use flirt! It hurt itself in its confusion! You have no idea how long I spent tryin' ta' find some flag that matched her colors.
(Art sampled from "Outsiders" Vol. 5 #8 by Jackson Lanzing, Collin Kelly, Robert Carey, Valentina Taddeo, Tom Napolitano, James Reid, Jessica Berbey, and Katie Kubert. Edits: Altered Dialogue)
#pride month#lgbtq+#lgbtqia+#queer#flirting#dc comics#batwoman#jinny hex#comics#comic books#new comic book day#hey you with the face is the best greeting
18 notes
¡
View notes
Text
Welcome To The Itadori's! - C.K.
Synopsis. Three times Choso really, really wanted to hold you without his family barging in, and the one time he actually does.Â
Pairing. Best friend! Choso Kamo x Reader
Content. MDNI, fem! reader, childhood best friends to lovers, slowburn, cameos from the Itadoriâs (Yuji, Jin, grandpa, SUKUNA), smĂşt only when theyâre adults, first times, oral (female receiving), cĂşnnilingus, marking, rough, Chosoâs a bit mean in bed, pet names, swearing.
Word count. 5.0k
A/N. The unc-kuna brainrot got me here, Yujiâs family tree is HILARIOUS.
âYouâve never what?â Â
âI mean, yeah? So what if Iâve neverâŚuh-â eyes darting to the erotic scene on-screen. âMâsurely not missing out on that much.â
Maybe he was. Maybe he wasnât. Whatever the answer was, Choso could only pray that no one walked into your apartment right now.
---
Choso swears his family is well and fully intent on ruining every waking moment with you.Â
Heâs convinced even, at this point. Because in the 13 long years of being inseparable from you - ever since you were both whiney, snot-faced brats - Chosoâs racked up more interruptions than heâs seen on those k-dramas that his grandfather swears he doesnât watch.
It was like some cosmic joke, really. All he wanted was a moment with just the two of youâŚand maybe a second or two to confess his undying love. But that didnât seem too realistic when the Itadoriâs were a bit of a packaged deal, unfortunately. Â
Alas, Chosoâs resigned himself to accept the fact that maybe - just maybe - this was the universeâs way of telling him that his pretty best friend was indeed too good for him. Something heâs suspected ever since the both of you were eight.
The realization had hit him like a semi-truck back then - five of them, in fact. And a whole zoo of animals afterward.
Of course, itâs not like that was any secret. He always thought you were perfect from the second youâd moved in - that new family next door heâd been eagerly waiting ages to arrive. And Choso, being the dutiful oldest son, was the one to deliver welcome cookies to your doorstep. Stumbling, and carefully trying to reach for the doorbell without dropping any.Â
âUm, welcome to-â
âYour hairâs funny.â
Now, Chosoâs never greeted neighbors before, but it surely wasnât supposed to go like this. Why was he being insulted by some little girl - you were missing a few teeth, and his had just grown back in so obviously he was much older and wiser. All unapologetic smiles and twinkling eyes as you blink up curiously at his space buns. Pretty, even when you were tearing his heart out because hey, he thought this hairstyle was cool, okay?
Which is what had him huffing and puffing back home, running straight into the arms of his dad while he tried not to cry. That is, until you came knocking at his door with your parents. Very much bawling and pulling him into a bone-crushing hug with wet mumbles of âMâsorry, meant your hairâs very cool. Wanna match-â
And, if his cheeks burned just a bit, well, Choso blamed the tears.Â
After a disaster like that, of course youâd grow to be best friends within the day.Â
But what that didnât explain was when - after hours of bickering over whether to play tag or house - you were all tuckered out and sat beside him in a corner of his room, too exhausted to talk his ear off. Head lolling once. Twice. Falling softly onto his shoulder.
Oh.Â
Now, Choso might just be having the first epiphany of his entire, grueling eight years in this world - that you were very, very pretty fast asleep with your head on his shoulder.Â
Why? Why were you here barging into his life and turning it upside down? Calling him your ânew best friendâ and dragging him along wherever you went. It made his poor head absolutely spin, not daring to move a muscle so that you didnât wake up and see this tiny predicament.
He didnât know why. But what he did know was that he found himself subconsciously reaching for your hand, a strange little part of himself wanting to see how much smaller they were than his. They looked so soft and warm and-
âI WANNA PLAY T- Oh.â
Oh indeed. He hastily lurches away from you like it burned, hands raised like he was caught red-handed. Feeling slightly sorry when he sees you blinking away the sleep to take in your surroundings, eyes bouncing off of a very excited Yuji and resting on the clock.
âOh no. Mommyâs gonna be mad.â you gasp, hastily getting up. And he feels a weird pang as you quickly dust down your dress, running out the door with a laughed out, âBye, Yuji! See ya later, Cho~!â
âBye, crybaby.â
And then itâs quiet. Only Choso still staring after you, and Yuji staring at his older brother, somewhat awestruck and wondering only one thing-
âBig bro, why are you so red?â
Choso doesnât think heâs gotten a moment alone with you since that first initial meeting.Â
Fourteen was definitely the worst, in his opinion.
âHey, Cho, yâknow the girl sitting next to me in math said she had her first kiss today.â
âOh.â Itâs all Choso can manage to get out, paying more attention than he should to the gravel beneath him as he tries not to trip over air beside you. Hot under his uniform collar at the sudden shift in conversation from the usual after-school banter.Â
Looping your arm with his, you heave out a playful sigh, âI wonder what that feels like. Have you ever thought about it?âÂ
No, but Choso has never thought that heâd be here - face burning at your body pressed up against his. Just knowing that his ancestors above are laughing at what a loser he is, barely able to stammer out an answer to your question.Â
Okay, maybe he was being dramatic. Because it wasnât like he hadnât thought about kissing before - itâs just that whenever it popped into his mind, you were usually accompanying him. Along with those strange thoughts of whether your lips are as soft as they looked? Or would your heartbeat be as fast as-
âMan, are you even listening?âÂ
Shit.Â
Your hand waving in front of Chosoâs face brings him back to reality. Blinking hastily, he tries to gather his thoughts, mumbling out a quick, âUh, yeah, sorry. Just lost in thought.â averting his gaze as he feels the heat rise to his cheeks at your intense gaze.
Your smile only widens, a mischievous glint in your eyes as you nudge his side. âThinking so hard about kissing, huh? Cho, you lecher!âÂ
âAm not.â
âAm to.â
âAm not.â
âAm to.â
âWho were you imagining it with, huh? Gonna give âem a big smooch tomorrow?â
God, you were going to be the death of him. âN-no! I havenât even- shut up, crybaby, itâs not like-â he sputters out useless protests over your laughter - his favorite song, even when you were teasing the hell out of him. But ah how you relish in his embarrassment, tittering out little giggles all the way until youâre steering him onto your lane.Â
Choso, on the other hand, keeps wishing the ground would swallow him up more and more with each step towards his porch. Heâd have broken into a sprint right then if he hadnât known you and the way youâd race him there instead.
âAlright.â you declare once youâre stood at his front door, jolting Choso out of his reverie. And heâs barely opening his mouth to register your words before you plowing on confidently. âWeâll just have to practice our first kisses with each other.â
Perfect. Great. Wonderful.Â
The final nail on his coffin. You might as well have planted a bombshell right in the middle of his already-chaotic world with the way he was reeling in- shock? Fear? Anticipation?
âPractice.â Choso whispers, more to himself than you. Yet you nod anyway, eyes locked with his like you were studying his reaction. âForâŚpractice.â
Doubt starts to creep into your pretty features, âWell, we donât have to if you do-â
âNo no no no, I want- ahem.â he cringes at the pathetic desperation in his voice. Desperately trying to scramble back some semblance of sanity as he clears his throat, âI want to. Just-â Choso urgently looks around for- ah, there it is.Â
Dragging over the brick from the side of his porch because goddammit he might be 14 but he sure hadnât hit that growth spurt yet. âPractice, right?â
You nod with a fiery determination that, later on, would make Choso chuckle with fondness. Muttering out a firm, âPractice.â Letting the boy in front of you nervously leans closer, breath fanning your face. And shit if you were nervous then you didnât show it, but Choso felt like he was about to spontaneously combust.Â
Brows furrowing in concentration, eyes only squinting ever-so-slightly as he takes peaks at how pretty you looked. Close enough that he could count every lash as your pretty eyes closed shut, lips glistening with that strawberry chapstick you loved, puckering adorably. Only inching closer and-
Click!Â
âYou two are so cute! But um- dear, how do you mute this thing?â
You spring apart so fast that Choso wouldnât be surprised if youâd teleported. He doesnât even know whatâs happening before, from the safety of about three meters away from him, youâre muttering out an embarrassed little, âHi there, Mr. Itadori. The gardenia are coming along nicely.â
His dad smiles like he hadnât just starred in what was likely Chosoâs villain origin story. Waving happily, âAww, thank you, sweetheart. Now, why donât you two go back to doing your lilâ thing and I can ah- practice my photography.â
âDad, Iâm running away.â
That practice kiss never happens. And, well, if there was a proudly framed photo down the hallway of the two of you - with Choso absolutely bright red and standing comically on a brick to meet your height, faces nervously scrunching towards each other - well, neither of you ever mention it. Jin Itadori does, though - every time you come over, in fact.Â
Itâs only when youâre both eighteen, when Chosoâs a lot deeper in his feelings - and only slightly less embarrassed about it - that he thinks that maybe not all family interruptions were that bad.Â
Graduation wasâŚsomething. Not exactly something that heâs sure if heâll ever want to relive with the sheer amount of awkward photos and tears that his dad lets out. God if he has to shuffle into another-
âYou alright, Cho?â
Ah.Â
Traitorously, a smile makes its way onto his face, peering down at your beaming face. Both of you having made it way past the awkward early teens. Well, at least you certainly have - Choso still feels like the same awkward little boy with an even more awkward crush. âHm? Yeah, mâgreat.âÂ
âAre ya sure? Because you look like youâre about to have an aneurysm any second now.â you raise a brow teasingly. Ah, how gorgeous you were - even when youâre picking him apart.Â
âYeah. Great. Only had this smile plastered on for the last five hours.â
âAww, but you look so pretty smiling.â you shrug, with the audacity of someone that didnât just have Chosoâs knees dangerously weak. âAnyway- A bunch of us are gonna try to convince olâ Yaga to let us take photos with his shades, you wanna come?â
âYou think mâpretty?â he muses, embarrassingly late.
âCho.â
âYaga. Shades. Got it.â Choso mock salutes, drinking in the little laugh it startles out of you, eyes sparkling with mischief and looking right into his soul. Beautiful. You were always beautiful.Â
And Choso canât just stand around and do nothing about it.
âCrybaby, look, I-â Fists clenching, he takes a steadying breath. The heat only rising to his cheeks at your awaiting gaze, âIâŚâ
âHEY, GRANDPA HELPED STEAL YAGAâS SHADES LETâS TAKE A PIC-â
âSHUT THE FUCK UP ITADORI. YOUâRE RUINING A MOMENT, LET THEM HAVE THEIR MOMENT.â
âI donât know either of you two.â
It would be a miracle for a moment not to be ruined with two overly-energetic first-years (and a very reluctant Fushiguro) pushing their way into your little bubble. Choso bites back a groan as youâre immediately swarmed by a bickering Kugisaki and Yuji, one apologizing for âruining your k-drama momentâ and the other trying to get you to put on some sunglasses. Well, at least he could empathize with the black-haired boy, who gave him an apologetic nod.Â
Heâs only halfway through waving off the interruption before a voice speaks up from his side. âWhy didnât you say it?â
Whirling around, Choso comes face-to-face with the disappointed look on his grandfatherâs face. Already having some idea of what you mean, âWha-â
âI may be old but mânot deaf, yet, boy. Why didnât ya tell her?â he sighs, tilting his head to where you were wearing those shades and taking ridiculous pictures with two animated first-years.Â
âI donât know what you-â
âMânot blind, either. Quite frankly Iâm insulted.â
And, well, if thereâs anyone that he canât hide from - it would be his grandfather. So he heaves out a defeated sigh, touselling his hair while muttering out a pathetic little, âMânot- Ugh, sheâs too fuckinâ perfect and IâŚI chickened out.â
Choso doesnât know what he expected in response but it definitely wasnât for his grandfather to laugh. Full, and raspy - loud enough that even you stop to stare. âThought so, idiot boy.â he chuckles, drawing indignant protests. âDid she tell you?â
Raising a brow, âWhat?â
âDid she tell you that you werenât good ânough for her?â
âNo, but-â Whatever protest on the tip of Chosoâs tongue is cut off by a rough hand smacking his back in what he thinks is reassurance, but felt more like a punishment for being such a pussy around you all these years.Â
âThen go. Ya might just be surprised. After all, youâre my grandson, and all the ladies at bingo love me.â
Shaking with both adrenaline and the effort to keep that image out of his mind, he makes his way towards you. Purposeful. Pointedly ignoring the matching smirks flashed his way.Â
âYou really think theyâll finally get together today?â Fushiguro deadpans from where heâd snuck up beside the old man, in an attempt to escape the public nuisances he calls âfriendsâ.Â
Chosoâs grandfather hums thoughtfully, watching the scene play out before him - Choso flushed such a delicate shade of pink as you playfully put Yagaâs sunglasses on him. Settling on a gruff, âIâll give it a few months more. Heâs my grandson, after all.â
âThatâs generous. Iâd give it a couple years more.â
âWanna bet, brat?â
â...â
Safe to say, his second button ended up safely in your hands that day. But Fushiguro would be the one to really win the bet.Â
Because it was only 2 years, 4 months and 3 weeks after this little incident that Choso finally had you exactly where he wanted - with no interruptions. All for him.Â
Freshly twenty one, splayed out on your apartment bedroom and having a conversation that he never in a million years wouldâve even dared to imagine heâd have - with you of all people. All because of that stupid R-rated film youâd put on for movie night.Â
âYouâve never what?â you gape, turning down the volume to those painfully fake moans coming from the tv.
Oh, how gorgeous you looked - all shocked and batting your lashes up at him in surprise. Choso almost swoons inwardly (and outwardly) before he realizes that shit you were probably waiting for an answer.
âI mean, yeah?â he sputters out, cheeks heating up as you lean in closer to hear him. Close. âSo what if Iâve neverâŚuh-â eyes darting to the erotic scene on-screen. âMâsurely not missing out on that much.â
Goddammit, some strange, carnal part of himself twinges dangerously at the little smirk that curls your lips. One that he quickly - and embarrassingly - realizes has the blood rushing straight to his cock. Humming a low, âMaybe. Maybe not.â The mattress dips slightly as you shift closer, lips ghosting his ear. âWant me to help you find out?â
Which is, well, how Choso found himself shoved against the armrest. Blanket thrown on the floor now, swollen cock leaking furiously through his pants as your pretty lilâ cunt hovers above his mouth. So wet that if he stuck his tongue out he could have you dripping all onto him.Â
âY-you sure about this, sweetheart?â he hisses despite his hands looping around your thighs, bringing you closer to him.
You raise a brow, âAre you sure, Cho?â
He should say no. He should laugh this all off as a bad joke. He shouldnât ruin this friendship - but oh how badly he wants just a taste of your dripping pussy - see if sheâs as sweet as the rest of you is. So, throwing caution to the wind, Choso nods slowly. âYes. Want it sâbad.â
Grinning wickedly, you whisper, âThought so.â And then heâs pulling you onto his mouth, hot and urgent.
âOh fuck-â he groans, eyes rolling to the back of his head at the first taste of your sweet sweet juices. âShit shit shit.â So sloppily licking up your swollen folds - barely moving with any method or patience, just that heâs drunk on your pussy and wants more more more-
âHngh- f-fuck. You sure this is your hah- first time, Cho?â you gasp breathlessly. And oh your best friend was so fucking beautiful. Dark hair untied and tousled, eyes half-hooded, your slick already smearing across the bottom half of his face and trickling down his jaw because shit he was so messy. So addicted to that desperate expression on your face that he just canât help but tease you a little bit.Â
âMhm?â he smirks, tongue swirling around your pulsing clit. Purposefully missing right where you wanted him the most because shit he loved those cute lilâ whines spilling out of you.Â
You let out a huff, hips trying pathetically to inch him closer - but Choso wasnât budging. Holding you so firmly by the hips that youâre sure he leaves bruises, licking all over your cunt except for your clit. âCho.â you warn. Brows furrowing in frustration at the way he bats his long lashes up at you so deceivingly innocently, âWhat?â
âYou knowâŚâ
âI donât.â he titters teasingly into your pussy.Â
âChoso.â
Now, Chosoâs known and seen everything there is to do with you - but never like this. Spread open shamefully and pouting so adorably on top of him, so needy for him. It made his head spin to think of just how much the dynamics had shifted.Â
Shit, he really shouldâve watched that godforsaken movie with you sooner. âTell me what you want, crybaby.â
And oh how his cock twitches at the way you manage to get out an embarrassed little, âWanâ you to ngh- tonguefuck me properly. Wanna cum on your pretty face, Cho.â
And thatâs all thatâs said before heâs surging forward, glossy lips wrapping around your pulsing clit to suck harshly. Rolling his soft tongue over and over-
âWanted this for so long.â Choso mutters, muffled as he buries himself deeper into your pretty pussy. The vibrations sending white-hot pleasure running down your spine. âYou have absolutely no idea, pretty.â
And you barely even have the time to register his little confession before Chosoâs moving down to bully his tongue past your folds. Nose pressing against your throbbing clit as he dips into your sloppy hole.Â
âOh shit. Jusâ like that.â For a beginner, your best friend really knew what he was doing. Eating you out like his favorite meal, tongue squeezing into your snug pussy to thrust in and out, swipe against your walls, stretching you out right to his will. Over and over-
âUse me.â
Your eyes snap down to meet the pure adoration in his eyes as he makes out filthily with your cunt. Choking out a little, âWhat?â
âUse me.â
There it was again - that strained little mantra. And as if to prove his point, Choso reaches out to deftly place your hands on his head, bucking into you touch.Â
And, well, how could you say no to that?
Because before you know it, youâre bunching Chosoâs soft strands in your fists. Angling him just right to ride his pretty face. âCâmon, Cho. Ngh- H-harder, jusâ a bit- Oh!â he just devours the way your mouth drops into an adorable little oh! as his tongue curls deftly against that one spot. Again and again. Letting himself be so used, dragging your dripping cunt harder on his mouth.Â
And he likes it. Hell, he loves it even - because youâre so sweet nâ pretty on his mouth. Better than everything heâs ever been dreaming of for the past few years. And always in his dreams, youâd be clenching so deliciously around his tongue when you were close - just like right now.Â
So he speeds up his movements, breathing you in maddeningly. A hand snaking down from itâs favorite place on your hips to draw quick, frenzied little circles on your poor, ravaged clit. Jaw almost aching with how filthily he was dripping in and out of your entrance - be he did give a shit. Only wanting to have you breathless and creaming all over his face.
You jerk violently on top of him, âHah! Sâtoo much, Cho. Mâso close- gonna cum- gonna-â
And then youâre cumming. Fast, and hard.Â
Plushy walls clamping down on Chosoâs tongue, hips stuttering on his face as he laps up all your juices, an arm around your waist helping you ride his face through your high.Â
âSâsweet. Could get used to that.â he slurs into your cunt. Tipping his head back as far as itâd go to let the last of your juices slide down his throat. âBetter than I imagined.â
The words ring in your ears as you blink back your vision. Deliriously whirling down to look down at Choso - still beneath you and looking more smug and content than youâd ever seen him. âImagination? Sâthat why youâre so good.â
âNo.â
Youâre being flipped before you know it. Manhandled so easily by your best friend as he lays you on your back, sinking into the cushion while he looms above you. âSâjusâ thatâŚâ grunting as he flings his shirt off, âBeen dreaming of your pretty cunt on mâtongue for years.â
Okay, now his confession hits - more than it did when he was tonguefucking you into insanity, anyway.Â
âYears, huh?â you breathe out, eyes roaming all over his sculpted torso. Taking in every dip and curve of Chosoâs toned abs - all the way from his broad shoulders to the rock-hard cock straining against his pants. As if in a trance, your hand reaches out to cup his leaking erection, âSâthat all youâve been dreaming of?â
âYou little minx.â he lets out a low hiss.Â
Before you can even react, Chosoâs fumbling with that belt - cursing because shit, heâd have worn sweatpants instead if he knew theyâd end up on your floor.Â
And youâre not any better, fingers popping open his buttons and tugging impatiently and oh- You always thought that your best friend would have a big dick - but this? Â He was so intimidatingly long - and thick enough that you wondered whether youâd hurt yourself. Fat tip flushed such a pretty shade of pink to match his cheeks, leaking down down down, all the way to his heavy balls.Â
Youâre only jolted out of your little reverie by Choso spitting a steady stream of spit onto your quivering cunt, spreading it lazily across your pussy with his thumb. A ringed fist pumping his cock slowly, as he drags his tip across your folds, pooling your sweet juices. Muttering out a raspy, âIâll be gentle.â
âYou better not be, now jusâ fuck me-â
Well, you didnât have to ask Choso twice. Because youâve barely gotten the words out before heâs bullying massive cock into your tight cunt. Pressing in inch by fucking inch as you gasp and buck underneath him.Â
âShhh, sâokay, crybaby. This is what you wanted, right?â he mumbles, with all the audacity of someone that wasnât fucking into you in rapid, mindless little jabs to fit inside your snug lilâ pussy. Struggling to hold back at this point. âWanted to be split apart on mâcock?â
You were so full of him. Even more so when he throws your legs over his shoulders, bending all the way down and folding you in half so easily beneath him.Â
He drinks in the barely-lucid squeal that leaves your swollen lips. Kissing your forehead gently, whispering against the skin, âBecause Iâve wanted this for so fucking long.â
And then it was like something snapped - maybe his sanity, maybe the restraint that Chosoâs been holding back for too long. Because immediately heâs plunging his throbbing cock into you - all the way till his balls, all angry and squeezing so painfully, smacks against your ass.Â
âWanted this.â he rasps into your open mouth. His hips were out of control now, thrusting you in shallow, desperate rams. Pounding into you like a man possessed, and running his mouth just as much. He laces his fingers on top of your head, pushing you down even deeper into his relentless cock - as if the bastard wasnât fucking you dumb already. âFuckinâ needed this needed this. Shit- so bad.â
âCh-Choso- fuck hah-â you plead as his mouth clashes with yours. All sloppy with teeth and spit and his profanities - and it felt so damn good.Â
âYeah? Whoâs fucking you silly, now?â heâs going harder now, tip hitting your poor cervix over and over. And youâd be sobbing at the burn and the stretch but all you can think of is shit this is Choso - the kid you used to play hide and seek with. And now he seems fully intent on breaking you. âSay mâname.â
A rough thumb starts toying with your clit, in time with the cute lilâ whines of his name that escape your mouth like a prayer. âShit. Yâlook so pretty like this.â he babbles. âGonna cry, pretty girl?â smirking down at the way you were too cockdrunk to even snap back, only looking up at him with delirious, teary eyes. âBe a crybaby for my cock?â
Youâre tugging on his hair, thighs shaky and bucking upwards. âCho-â
âMhm?â
âW-wanna cum. Need you to fill mâup till I canât take it anymore.â
Oh if Choso was any lesser man heâd have cum right then and there. Instead settling for a guttural groan, drunk off the way you were milking his cock so hard as if to prove your point. It almost made him want to stay like this forever. But no - not right now.Â
âOh yeah?â Hips becoming sloppy now, âNeed it? Shit- mâso close.â Each word slurred, punctuated by a harsh thrust, strokes long and frenzied. Using your heavenly pussy like his personal fucktoy. So hard that heâs sure youâd have embarrassing matching bruises tomorrow - his balls on your ass, your nails raking down his shoulders.
âMe too- fuck fuck fuck-â you mewl into his neck, as Choso buried his face into yours.Â
âCum fâme, my girl.â
My girl.Â
And then you are - and he is. And you donât know who cums first, just that youâre seeing stars behind your eyes and Chosoâs teeth digging into your neck as he thrusts once. Twice. Before cumming and cumming so hard he might as well have seen the pearly gates of heaven. And you were an angel.
Thick, hot ropes of cum that paint your walls white, so much that it gushes out of your poor overfilled pussy. Dripping down your legs and pooling into a sinful, creamy ring at his base.Â
âMm- shit. Choso.â you moan, barely audible over the lewd squelches from below.Â
âMâhere, my girl.â he grits out, voice shot. And it seems that that was his new favorite nickname, because Choso keeps murmuring it over and over as he keeps fucking his seed into you. Not even thinking about it at this point - just mindless, shallow grinds of his hips.Â
In the haze of your orgasm, you think you hear his quiet voice, strained with exhaustion and something that you werenât in the right state of mind to decipher right now.Â
âShhh, mâhere. âCanât believe I waited so fuckinâ long.â Whispering against your lips, âLove this. Love this pretty cunt.â Kissing softly, âLove the way yâtake me. Fuckinâ made fâme.â And maybe even a soft little, âLove you.â
And maybe - just maybe, you whisper the same into his. Kissing him softly, exactly the way youâd wanted to all these years.Â
Neither of you speak after that. Not when Chosoâs hips stall, body sticky and collapsing onto yours. Nor do you speak when he pulls away with a playful nip to your lower lip - a promise. Searching through your clothes for a washcloth he can wipe yourselves clean with.Â
Itâs only when he settles back under the covers beside you, looking at you with such dark, hazy eyes - whirling with too many emotions to name - that the silence is broken.Â
âCrybaby.â
âCho.â
âCorny.â
âYou started it.â
Chuckling, Choso pulls your body close to his. Not even a hairâs breadth between you two because shit now that heâs got you, he doesnât think he ever wants to let you go.Â
âYâknowâŚâ he starts, âI think we should- I mean- if you wantâŚâ nervous now more than he was even after all that just transpired. Cheeks flaring as he meets your amused gaze, just daring him to go on - because you saw through him. You always did. âI lov-â
âAm I late for the mov- WHAT THE FUCK I ALWAYS KNEW BRATS WERENâT JUST FRIENDS-â
---
Itadori Family Groupchat + Two More
Dad: Hey, all. I canât seem to get a hold of Choso to confirm tomorrowâs dinner plans. Can anyone else let me know if heâs ok? XX
-Jin.
Yuji <3: Heâs probs at rhat âbest friend movie nightâ stillÂ
Dad: Hello, Yuji. What is a âprobsâ? XX
-Jin.
Kugisaki: Heâs suspiciously quiet, though⌠Yâall think that âbest friend movie nightâ is codeword for something else?Â
Yuji <3: Better not be cuz Sukuna stole my sparw key sayin something ab crashing it idk
Kugisaki: *spare
And you just LET him?
Yuji <3: HE THREATENED TO BURN MY MEGAN THEE STALLION POSTERÂ
âŚ
AND DID IT ANYWAY
Kugisaki: L
Fushiguro: L
Gramps: L
Sukuna (do not answer): DID YâALL KNOW THOSE TWO WERE FUCKIN????
*Fushiguro has left the chat*
Dad: :0
-Jin.
A/N. Spiritually, this is a crackfic idk.
#choso x reader#choso smut#choso x you#jjk x reader#jjk smut#jjk x you#choso kamo x reader#choso kamo smut#choso kamo x you#jujutsu kaisen x reader#jujutsu kaisen smut#jujutsu kaisen x you#jjk#jjk fic#jujutsu kaisen#choso#tonywrites#choso kamo
16K notes
¡
View notes
Text
just practice
paring! bsf!jj x reader
in which! you have a date coming up and you still havenât lost your virginity, so you go to your best friend in the hopes he will help you out and save you from embarrassment
warnings! smut. loss of virginity. oral sex (f. receiving) pnv sex. unprotected sex.
part 2
you find jj at the chateau, laying in a hammock on the porch with his shirt off and a joint between his fingers. you could smell the scent of weed before you even made it to the door and jj gave you a smile when he noticed you.
âhey, j.â you greeted, now standing in front of the bench. âyou busy?â
âwhatâs it look like?â he took a long drag from the joint and exhaled. you couldnât help but grin at his glazed over eyes and his genuine, high smile.
you glanced into the screen door, looking for john b, or anyone else, but couldnât see well from the smoky haze.
âanyone home?â
he shakes his head no.
âkie and pope are working, think john bâs out with sarah.â he says. âwhy? you okay?â his eyes soften and you notice his look of concern.
âyeah,â you smile, âeverythingâs fine, just need to uh- talk to you.â you had no idea how you were gonna go through with this without making it incredibly awkward. you already felt sick to your stomach at the thought of him rejecting you and never seeing you the same way after this.
jj nods and stubs out his joint. he stands up and opens the screen door, motioning for you to enter first.
âafter you.â
you smile and step inside, but you soon begin to feel ill at the fact that you were really going to ask him this. you wanted this to happen, but you were terribly nervous.
you lead him to his room and close the door behind you. he sits on the edge of the bed and you follow, sitting crisss cross, facing him.
âyou sure everythingâs fine?â he asks, obviously questioning the fact that you wanted to speak to him in his room, and that you were silent.
âi told you about that guy iâve been talking to for a few weeks, yeah?â you start, not wanting to make eye contact with the boy.
âyeah.â he nods.
you try not to pick at the skin of your fingernails.
âokay, well, he asked me out.â you say. âthe dateâs tomorrow.â
he furrows his eyebrows in question, noticing that you sounded kind of disappointed about something that was supposed to be good.
âwell thatâs a good thing, right?â he scoffed. âi mean, i cant remember the last time you went on a date.â
âshut up.â you nudge him. âyeah, itâs a good thing⌠i like him- i think.â
âalright, well, thatâs all you wanted to tell me?â he asks. âyou donât need dating advice right? because i canât help you in that department.â
you fight a smile at his remark and shake your head no.
âokay, hereâs the thing.â you sigh before you force out your next words, absolutely dreading his reaction. âi donât know if heâll wanna sleep with me eventually, and, well heâs kind of experienced with girls and all that, and iâm kind ofâŚ. not.â you cringe at your choice of words, already regretting coming to jj out of embarrassment. you glance at him momentarily and he seems to be studying you, waiting for you to keep talking. âwhat i mean is, like-â you sighed. you knew you sounded like a complete idiot, but you didnât want to back out now.
âyou know iâm a virgin, right?â you didnât even want to look at him after the words came out of your mouth.
he smiled a little.
âi, uh, i figured.â he scratched the back of his head awkwardly and cleared his throat.
âdonât be a dick.â you shove him once again and he chuckles, which allows you to lighten up just slightly. âiâm saying that i donât know what iâm doing - yâknow, with guys and all that. i donât want to embarrass myself in front of him.â
âso you want⌠sex advice? from me?â he asks, raising his eyebrows with suspicion.
you nervously bite the inside of your cheek and your face grows hot.
âwell, i thought maybe a little more hands on.â you said before you could even stop yourself. you knew you had to just come out and say it or you wouldâve backed out and nothing would ever come of this situation. you searched his face for a reaction.
he looked confused, but he didnât seem whole heartedly against the idea. the silence between you both was becoming awkward and you felt the need to explain yourself, hopefully making the situation sound less like you were coming on to him and more like a friend just asking for help.
âi mean like, because youâre a guy and all, you would know what guys like best, i guess?â you said, as you watched him cross his arms over his chest and lean against the headboard of the bed. âand i was thinking about the fact that iâm going on a date for the first time since freshman year and now thereâs a very high chance that iâll sleep with him in the coming weeks, and it just- i donât know, the idea of losing my virginity to someone iâve known for a month didnât really sound good to me.â you weâre rambling at this point to try and defend your case. âi would rather do it with someone i know, and trust.â
âyou want me to take your virginity?â he asked, blatantly. âthatâs what you came here for?â
you nod, probably chewing a hole into your cheek now.
âif itâs too weird for you, you donât have to do it at all, itâs okay.â you said. âyou were just the only person i felt like i could ask without it being awkward.â
âno, no,â his expression softens and he shakes his head, pulling his arms from his chest and taking his back off the headboard. âiâll do it.â
âreally?â your eyes light up because you expected this to go far south.
âyeah, no big deal.â he shrugs, even though in his head he knew it was a huge deal. he was going to be your first time and if he screwed it up, there was no telling what would happen between you two. âbut, this wonât change anything between us right?â he asked. âlike i just donât want it to be awkward afterwards.â
âi swear.â you said, although you didnât entirely know if that was the truth. âyouâre just helping me out, right?â
âalright.â he responds. âyou, uh, you wanna do this now or..?â he clears his throat again, visibly getting nervous, but your fears seemed to be disappearing now that you knew he wasnât against the idea.
âthe sooner, the better.â you said.
jj gets up from the bed and flips the lock on the door on the off chance someone were to come home.
âjust a warning though,â you start, âiâll definitely be really bad at this compared to the other girls youâve been with.â
âthatâs all right, you gotta learn somewhere.â he says, walking back to you and stopping right in front of where you were sitting on the bed. your heart started to race as the reality of what you were about to do started setting in. he sits down next to you and you could smell salt water and weed on his skin. âiâm gonna start with kissing you, is that okay?â you searches your face for confirmation and you nod, giving him the okay. âand youâll tell me if iâm taking things too fast or if you wanna stop, right?â
you giggle a little at his attention to the matter.
âyes jj.â
you see a very slight smile appear on his lips before he slowly leaned in and connected them with yours. he tasted like weed but in the most perfect way as he skillfully moved his lips in sync with yours. his tongue softly swiped your bottom lip at the same time his hands found their way to the sides of your face and he held you there gently. you took him touching you as a sign to occupy your own hands with his body as you brought your hands around his back, feeling his bare skin.
his kisses started leading down your chin, and further down onto your neck where he connected his lips with your skin. you shivered at the new feeling of someone kissing your neck as he went lower still, reaching your collarbone. he pulled away and tugged at the him of your shirt, asking for more access to your body and he helped you out of the fabric.
âyou doin okay?â he asks.
âtotally fine.â
he connects his lips to your collar again as he carefully lays you down onto your back. he fights the urge not to leave any hickeys on you, knowing you had a date tomorrow.
you scoot your body up until youâre in the middle of the bed so that he can easily get on top of you. he continues kissing your body, getting lower and lower and with each passing second, you could feel yourself getting hotter and your arousal getting stronger. his mouth reached the waistband of your jean shorts and he looked up your for permission to take them off. you nodded and he unbuttoned them before sliding them down your legs and tossing them somewhere on the floor.
jj kissed the curve of your hipbone and you mindlessly rolled your core up towards his mouth, to which you could feel him smirk against your skin at your neediness.
âiâll get there princess.â he said against the space under your bellybutton. you practically lost your breath at his words and your cheeks flushed out of embarrassment.
he continued kissing you even lower, placing his lips over clothed core and hooking a finger underneath the hem of your bikini bottoms.
âcan i take these off?â he asked.
âplease.â you nod, almost sounding too desperate.
he pulls your bottoms down your legs, leaving you exposed to him. the first time anyone had seen you like this, and you were thankful it was jj and not some random boy who didnât know the first thing about you.
âyou still alright?â
âjj,â you giggle. âiâll tell you if somethings wrong, okay?â
âjust being courteous.â he joked.
he brought his hand to your now bare core and used his thumb to swipe a line from your entrance up to your clit, making you whine from just one touch. he spreads your wetness around your clit, his pants growing tighter at the sight of your arousal. as he rubs painfully slow circles, he searches your face for signs of enjoyment, but your eyes were shut tight and your lips were parted, quiet whimpers leaving your mouth.
âjust relax, okay?â he said, to which you nod eagerly. you were totally not relaxed at all. in fact you were amped on adrenaline from the way he kissed you.
and then before you could register what was happening, you felt something new touching you. you opened your eyes and looked down at jjâs face in between your thighs, seeing his tongue swirling over your clit. it felt better than any time you had ever touched yourself. his eyes met yours for a second and you wondered why you never asked him to do this any sooner even though you pictured him going down on you many times before
your hands found their way to his blonde locks, your fingers tangling into his hair as you threw your head back on the pillow.
âoh my god, jjâ you moaned, to which he picked up the pace a little. he gripped your thighs firmly, holding them apart, occasionally rubbing circles into your skin with his thumbs to relax you.
his lips wrapped around your clit and he sucked, making you jolt your hips up in pleasure at the new sensation. your legs were trembling under his grip and jj didnât think he could get any harder, but he was, in fact, getting harder by the minute.
âjj,â you moaned his name, âplease donât stop!â you were pulling his hair tighter, trying not to be too loud in case anyone were to come home, but it was impossible to keep your mouth shut with the way he was eating your pussy. âfeels so goodâ you cried.
your hips were rocking back and forth, rolling in the same rhythm as his tongue, practically riding his face. he knew you were close based on the fact that your moans were getting closer together and your legs were shaking harder. he suddenly switched the direction of his tongue, now going side to side and occasionally sucking on your clit, swallowing your juices.
your back was arched off the bed, your hands flying to the sheets for something to hold on to as your high approached in small waves. you moved one hand to cover your mouth, trying to stifle your moans, but jj immediately reached up to your arm and pulled it from your face, not stopping his movements.
âneed to hear you cumâ he said against your clit before harshly sucking on it.
âfuckâ you moaned, his words alone almost leading you over the edge.
he snuck two fingers into your entrance and slowly moved them against the sweet spot inside you. the mixture of his mouth expertly lapping at your clit and his fingers pushing into you had you coming undone.
âfuck- donât stop- please- donât st-â you couldnât even get the last words out as you felt yourself completely lose control. you didnât know how loud you were moaning because all of your senses had faltered as the tidal wave of ecstasy crashed over you.
he kept licking until you had fully ridden out your orgasm, and even then, he continued, his grip still tight on your legs as they trembled. you pushed his head away from the overstimulation and then lay limp, your chest rising and falling as you came down, your eyes still closed.
âneed a second?â he asked, mockingly, his hands running up your torso and to your still covered breasts. he felt your nipples harden under your bikini top and he desperately wanted to get you out of it.
you wrap your arms around his back and pull him on top of you, connecting your lips with his again. he immediately kisses you back and reaches behind you to undo your top, which quickly comes off and jjâs eyes land on your breasts. he takes them both in his hands and leans over you to suck your nipple, making you shiver.
you occupy your own hands with his belt, fumbling with the clasp until itâs undone and pulling it through the loops.
he pulls himself away from your tits and starts undoing the zipper before his eyes meet yours.
âyou sure youâre okay with this?â he asks.
âi wouldnât be fully naked in front of you right now if i wasnât.â you joke.
he gets up from the bed to take his shorts off and look around the room, presumably for a condom.
âjohn bâs gotta have some around here, hold on.â he says, opening up the top drawer of the dresser and rummaging through the pairs of socks and underwear.
âyou donât have to, jay.â you say, but he doesnât listen, still looking inside the dresser for any small, silver packages. âiâm on birth control.â
he turns around cocks his head at you.
âwhat?â you question. âmakes my periods lighter.â you shrug.
âiâm still pulling out though.â he says before he walks back to the edge of the bed and slides his boxers off, revealing his achingly hard cock. you visibly got nervous at his length, swallowing the saliva in your mouth. jj notices the redness in your face and gets into the bed, pushing hair out of your face with his fingers. âiâll stop if itâs too much, just tell me.â you nod, anxiously and he positions himself on top of you, stroking his cock a few times before you feel his tip at your entrance. his eyes meet yours for confirmation and you give him a nod.
his cock slowly pushes into you, not even an inch as he doesnât want to hurt you. you shut your eyes hard, preparing for it to hurt, but you feel barely any pain. he kisses your neck and pushes himself in a little farther.
âthis feel okay?â he asks against your skin.
âfeels good, j.â your hands find their way to his back again.
once he bottoms out, you feel a slight pressure at your cervix before he slowly starts moving, giving you time to adjust to the feeling.
you hear jj moan in your ear from the painfully slow strokes he was taking, trying to keep himself from going too fast for you. his cock rubbed against your g-spot and you kiss the area in between his collar and neck.
âiâm okay jj.â you reassure him. âfaster, please.â
he picks up the pace and continues kissing your neck. your nails dig into the skin of his back.
âyou feel so goodâ he moans. âdoinâ so good for me- fuck.â he didnât even realize what he was saying, but you enjoyed the hell out of it. his praises added to the pleasure of him inside you.
he was going fast enough now that you could hear your skin hitting against each others as your hips connected. every thrust was stroking your sweet spot and you were pretty sure you were leaving scratches on his back, but jj felt too good to even notice.
he leaned back a little so that all his weight was on his knees and his back was straight as he grabbed one of your legs for support and used his other hand to rub your clit at the same time he was fucking you. the double stimulation illicited a loud moan from you that encouraged jj to keep going, almost nearing his end.
his thrusts were getting sloppier and his breathing was heavier but he wanted to make you finish before him. your chest heaved, feeling the new sensation of him filling you up at the same time as his fingers worked on your clit. the pressure was building up and you knew you were close. you suddenly pulled him against you so that your chests were pressed against each others.
âfuck- jjâ you moaned. âmâso close.â
his heavy breathing sounded like heaven to you as he started to fuck you even harder, his cock sliding perfectly in and out of you.
âsweetheartâ he moaned into your neck. âmânot gonna last much longer.â
almost immediately after he said those words, you felt the band in your stomach snap as you came around his cock, squeezing and pulling him deeper inside you. you cried out his name as he fucked you through your second orgasm.
âfuck, baby-â he pulled out of you and stroked his cock that was slick with your wetness. you watched his face contort in pleasure, his eyes barely open and his lips parted, his eyebrows furrowed. his cum shot onto your stomach and tits.
he tried not to stare too long at the mess he made of you, realizing almost as soon as he finished that this was a one time thing he may never get you like this again.
he got out of the bed and grabbed a shirt of the floor, which he cleaned you up with and tossed it.
âyou okay?â he asked again.
you rolled your eyes.
âhow many times are you gonna ask that?â you scoffed. âi liked it, j. donât know how my dateâs gonna top that.â you joked.
then, jj remembered that this was all practice for you to go and have sex with another guy and he suddenly felt sick. he pulled his boxers back on and picked up your articles of clothing from the floor and tossed them to you.
the truth is, you didnât even want to go on that date anymore. not after the way jj took care of you.
âhey, jj!â a voice, john bâs, ripped through the chateau and both of your eyes widened, looking at each other with panic. âyou home?â
you swiftly put your bottoms and shorts back on in under 30 seconds and shrugged yourself into your flimsy shirt while jj was putting his belt back on. you quickly exited john bâs room before he could see where you both came from and you nervously greeted him in the living room to see that sarah and kie were home as well.
âheyy, jb.â jj said, awkwardly.
âwhat have you two been doing all day?â john b asks.
kiara walked over to the kitchen to grab a beer and when she turned around, she noticed the marks on jjâs back. she paused in her steps.
âjj, whatâs with all the scratches on your ba-â and then she realized. her face contorted in disgust. âewwww, are you guys fucking serious?â
your face grows hot with embarrassment and you wanted to dig a whole to die in, but john b seems barely faced as he walked past you, saying something near you.
âat least you made that boyâs dreams come true.â
ďżź
#jj maybank#outer banks#jj maybank smut#jj maybank x y/n#jj maybank outer banks#jj maybank x reader#jj maybank imagine#obx#jj obx#jj obx fic#jj obx imagine#obx cast#obx fic#obx4#smut#netflix#television#jj x reader#jj x you#jj x y/n#jj maybank concept
4K notes
¡
View notes